Search the Community
Showing results for tags 'marriage'.
-
Short Synopsis / Teaser A powerful man discovers that surrender can be more intoxicating than control. David has built his life on authority—career, marriage, reputation—but beneath the surface lies a quiet fracture he can no longer ignore. When his wife Carolyn introduces a solution that promises comfort, relief, and stability, David finds himself pulled into a carefully guided transformation where shame, desire, and devotion intertwine. As routines become rituals and comfort turns into identity, David slowly gives way to Daisy—a softer, smaller self shaped by dependency, feminization, and the intoxicating relief of letting go. What begins as a private coping mechanism evolves into something far more consuming, testing the boundaries of love, power, consent, and selfhood. The Making of a Sissy Baby Cuckold is a slow-burn psychological descent into erotic surrender, where intimacy is redefined, control is inverted, and the line between nurture and manipulation blurs until it disappears entirely. Author’s Note / Content Warning Author’s Note While I used the assistance of AI to fully develop this story, it is mainly my own work of fiction aided by AI to help bring in background information and streamline the writing and ideas. Hence, I am posting in this section rather than the main storyboard location. This story explores intense psychological and erotic themes centered on power exchange, identity erosion, and consensual (but morally complex) manipulation within an adult relationship. It is intended for mature readers who are comfortable engaging with dark, transformative fantasies that challenge conventional ideas of masculinity, autonomy, and desire. Content Warning This work contains adult-only material (18+), including but not limited to: BDSM and power-exchange dynamics Erotic humiliation and degradation Adult infantilization (ABDL themes) Feminization and gender role transformation Psychological conditioning and hypnosis themes Sexual denial, dependency, and cuckoldry Unequal power dynamics within a marriage Emotional manipulation presented as consensual fantasy All characters are consenting adults, and no minors are involved. Readers who may find these themes disturbing, triggering, or objectionable are strongly advised to skip this work. This story is a work of fiction designed to explore taboo fantasies and psychological descent—not to advocate or normalize real-world coercion or harm. I am also attaching a PDF file of the story here The Making of a Sissy Baby Cuckold (©Daveaby 2026) Prologue (October 21, 2025, 1:30 a.m.) The nursery glowed a soft, merciless pink. A locking crib dominated the room—adult-sized, glossy white rails rising like prison bars. Inside, a 48-year-old man lay on his back, thick pink diaper printed with princesses already swollen and sagging heavily between his spread thighs. The plastic backing had warmed to his skin hours ago; every small shift produced a faint, wet squish that echoed in the quiet. Daisy—no longer David, not tonight—wore a short, frilly nightie in baby-pink chiffon that barely skimmed the diaper’s waistband. Satin booties encased his feet; a massive ribbon bow sat crooked in his thinning curls. His hands were sealed inside padded locking mittens, thumbs useless, wrists and ankles tethered to the crib rails in soft padded leather restraints. Between his lips bobbed a penis-shaped pacifier, secured by a ribbon so he could never spit it out. Worst—or best—of all was the baby monitor. Reversed. The receiver sat on the dresser beside the crib; the transmitter lived in the master bedroom down the hall. From it poured the unmistakable sounds of his wife—his Mommy—being thoroughly, gloriously fucked. Moans, gasps, the rhythmic creak of their old bed, Marcus’s low growls of possession. Carolyn’s voice, raw and desperate in a way Daisy had never heard directed at him: “Yes… God, yes… harder…” Daisy’s tiny clitty strained uselessly against the soaked gel, tenting the front of the diaper in a pathetic bulge the restraints wouldn’t let him touch. Tears slipped silently into the satin pillowcase. Morning—and whatever mercy or torment Carolyn chose to grant—was still hours away. This was the life he had begged for. This was the life he could never leave. Chapter 1: The First Wet Night Carolyn was forty-three, tall, auburn-haired, and still turning heads at the country club. Ten years of marriage to David had not dulled her beauty, but it had dulled everything else. David—forty-four, senior partner at a downtown law firm, broad-shouldered once upon a time—had let the courtroom stress and the after-work bourbon settle around his middle. His once-confident baritone now carried a slight wheeze after two drinks, and in bed he lasted less than two minutes on a good night. Carolyn had stopped counting the nights she lay awake beside him, thighs clenched in frustration, pretending to sleep so he wouldn’t paw at her again. She loved the house, the cars, the vacations, the platinum card with no limit. Divorce would mean losing all of it, and worse—gossip, loneliness, starting over. Affairs were out of the question; David had an airtight pre-nuptial agreement and friends in every judge’s chamber in the county. She needed a solution that kept the money and destroyed the problem at the same time. That solution arrived in the shape of her oldest friend, Linda. Linda was a clinical psychiatrist and hypnotherapist with a discreet practice on the north side of the city. Petite, dark-haired, always dressed in flowing black, she possessed a calm, almost amused authority that made people obey before they realized they had decided to. On Saturday they sat on Carolyn’s sun-drenched patio—Linda with a glass of rosé, Carolyn with tall glasses of peach iced tea (she never touched alcohol)—and Carolyn poured out her misery. “I’m dying inside, Linda. I need real sex, and I need to not feel guilty about it. But I can’t leave him and I can’t cheat without destroying everything.” Linda listened, swirling her glass, then smiled like someone unveiling a gift. “There’s another way,” she said. “I’ve seen it work. We take away the man he thinks he is. We make him small. Dependent. Grateful. We put him back in diapers, turn his tiny premature ejaculations into something he can only feel when he’s padded and helpless. And once he’s hooked on that helplessness, he will give you permission—out loud—to take a real man. He’ll beg for it eventually. I’ve read the case studies.” Carolyn’s pulse hammered. “You’re serious.” “Completely. I’ll handle the hypnosis. You just play the loving, heartbroken wife who’s trying to help with his ‘little problem.’ He’ll never suspect. The suggestions take time to root—days, sometimes a week or two. Be patient.” They shook hands like business partners. Three nights later Linda arrived for what David thought was a casual dinner. David liked Linda—she flattered him, kept his bourbon coming, and laughed at his war stories. But, since last year, he was always a little nervous when Linda was around as well. By ten he was loose, laughing a bit too loud, and bragging about a case he’d just won. Carolyn watched Linda’s fingers move—a subtle circle on the stem of her glass, a soft hum under the music. David’s eyelids sagged. His head nodded. “David,” Linda said gently, “look at my pendant.” The silver chain appeared between her fingers as if by magic. David’s gaze locked on it. Thirty seconds later his chin rested on his chest, breathing slow and deep. Carolyn’s heart hammered as Linda leaned close to her husband’s ear. “David, every night when you’re asleep and you feel the need to urinate, you will simply relax and let it flow. You will not wake up. You will not remember this instruction. You will feel safe and warm as you wet the bed. And whenever you hear me say the words ‘lawyer’s rest,’ you will return to this deep, obedient state instantly. Do you understand?” A low “Yes” rumbled from his throat. “Good boy.” Linda snapped her fingers. David blinked, straightened, and reached for his bourbon as if nothing had happened. That night Carolyn barely slept. Guilt gnawed at her—what kind of wife agreed to this? She almost called Linda at 2 a.m. to beg her to come back and undo it. But anticipation won. She lay awake, imagining David small and grateful, imagining herself finally, truly satisfied. Yet even as excitement overrode her doubts, a whisper lingered: Was this truly helping him, or just reshaping him for her own needs? The hypnosis felt like a shortcut—clever, but was it fair? She pushed it down, focusing on the vision of a grateful, dependent David, but the unease seeded deep. Morning came. The bed was dry. Carolyn felt a confusing rush of relief and disappointment. Maybe it hadn’t worked. Maybe the whole idea was foolish. She almost laughed at herself for believing in hypnosis. The next night: still dry. And the next. By the end of the week, she had convinced herself nothing would happen. Linda had been wrong. They would find another way—or no way at all. Then, nine nights after the dinner, David woke at dawn to the clammy reek of urine-soaked sheets. He shot upright, heart pounding. The bed was drenched. He hadn’t wet the bed since he was eleven years old—those humiliating childhood years he had buried deep. Terror flooded him. He stripped the sheets in a panic, started the washer on hot, and showered until his skin was raw. Too much bourbon the night before, he told himself. That had to be it. He cut out alcohol entirely the next night, avoided liquids after eight, even set an alarm to get up and pee at 3 a.m. like he used to do as a kid. It happened again. And again. By the third consecutive morning of soaked sheets, David was shaking. He made an appointment with his urologist, endured the tests, the questions, the humiliation of explaining adult-onset bedwetting to a doctor who had known him for twenty years. The tests were thorough and humiliating: urine samples, blood work, a prostate exam that left him red-faced and sore. The urologist, a no-nonsense man in his sixties, listened with a furrowed brow. "Sudden onset enuresis in adults is rare," he said, "but we'll rule out the big things—infection, diabetes, neurological issues." David nodded, gripping the exam table, his mind flashing unbidden to the thought of needing to wear diapers, the strange mix of shame and... something else. No, he pushed the thought away. This was medical, not whatever twisted corner of his brain was trying to make it otherwise. As they drove home in silence, Carolyn glanced at David, his face etched with worry. The plan was working—too well, perhaps. Linda's suggestions were burrowing deep, but what if he discovered the truth? The ethical twinge returned: manipulating his mind, even for 'his own good,' felt like a betrayal. But seeing him small and reliant stirred something powerful in her—control, yes, but also a twisted care. She silenced the doubt; happiness awaited, for both of them. Results came back two days later: negative across the board. No infections, no tumors, no blockages. "Physically, you're fine," the doctor said over the phone. "Could be psychological—stress from work, maybe? Consider seeing a therapist. In the meantime, protection at night isn't a bad idea until it resolves. Adult diapers work fine." David hung up, staring at his office wall. Fine? How could he be fine when he was wetting the bed like a child every night? That afternoon he drove to a large, impersonal medical supply store on the edge of town—one he’d never been to, far from anyone who might recognize him. The aisles smelled of plastic and antiseptic. Most of the adult briefs were plain white or beige, clinical and anonymous. But tucked on the lower shelves, mixed in with the maximum-absorbency tab-style briefs, were a few options that made his stomach flip: subtle blue or green waistbands, faint star patterns, even a few with tiny teddy-bear prints along the landing zone—nothing overtly childish, just enough “cute” to feel wrong in an adult man’s cart. He stared at the printed ones longer than he should have. A distant memory flickered—something from college, something he’d buried deep—and heat rushed to his face. No. He grabbed two cases of the thickest plain white overnight briefs instead, paid quickly, and hid them in the trunk until Carolyn was at the club. That evening he told her about the doctor visit, voice tight with shame. “They said protection at night. Until it stops.” Carolyn’s eyes widened with sympathy she didn’t have to fake. “You mean… diapers?” He flushed crimson. “Yeah. Just for sleeping.” She touched his arm. “Let me help you the first time. I want to make sure they fit right.” He wanted to argue, to tape it on alone and pretend it wasn’t happening. But her tone left no room. In their bedroom he lay back like a child while she slid the thick padding under him, powdered him slowly, and taped it snug. The bulk forced his thighs apart; the crinkle was deafening in the quiet room. “There,” she whispered, patting the front. “My big strong lawyer, safe and dry.” He couldn’t meet her eyes. That night he lay rigid, listening to every rustle. At some point he drifted off. When he woke at dawn, the sheets were pristine. The diaper was not. Heavy, sagging, warm, it clung to him like a second skin. He reached down with a trembling hand and felt the sodden weight. A strange, liquid shame coursed through him—followed by a pulse of something darker, something almost like relief. In the bathroom mirror he caught a glimpse of himself: forty-four years old, successful, rich, powerful—and standing in a soaked diaper. Behind him, Carolyn leaned in the doorway, smiling softly. “Good morning, baby,” she said. “See? Problem solved.” And somewhere deep in David’s mind, a tiny voice whispered that this was only the beginning. Chapter 2: Learning to Love the Warmth Linda came over on a quiet Thursday afternoon while David was still at the office. She and Carolyn sat at the kitchen island with herbal tea and spoke in low, conspiratorial voices. “The trick,” Linda explained, “is to wire his pleasure directly to the diaper itself. Every morning, he wakes up wet and ashamed. That shame is fertile ground. You give him the only orgasm he’s allowed, and you give it to him while he’s soaked. After a week the association will be ironclad. The wetter the diaper, the harder he’ll get. The diaper becomes the source of his relief, not you. That’s when the real power shift happens.” Carolyn’s cheeks flushed with something between excitement and cruelty. “And he’ll never suspect?” “He’ll think it’s his idea. Men like David always do.” Friday morning was the first test. David’s alarm never went off; Carolyn had silenced it the night before. At seven-fifteen he stirred, felt the familiar heavy sag between his legs, and felt his erection growing from the feeling of it. The room was bright. Carolyn was already awake, propped on one elbow, watching him with soft, affectionate eyes. “Good morning, sweetheart,” she murmured, sliding her hand under the covers. David’s breath caught as her palm settled on the swollen front of his overnight diaper. The padding was hot, squishy, and reeked faintly of urine and baby powder. He started to pull away—instinct, pride—but her fingers pressed gently, possessively. “Shh. Poor baby was all wet again. Let me take care of that little problem for you.” His cock was already stiffening against the sodden gel before she even began. Carolyn began a slow, deliberate massage—squeezing the thick padding around him, rubbing in lazy circles. The slick warmth squelched with every stroke. David groaned in helpless pleasure. “Carolyn, I—” “It’s okay,” she whispered, cutting him off. “Just relax and enjoy it.” She worked him mercilessly slowly, dragging it out until his hips twitched involuntarily. The diaper made crinkling and wet noises. Every time he tried to form a protest; he just couldn’t bring himself to do it. He didn’t want to cum in the wet diaper in front of his wife, but it felt so good. He came with a strangled cry, pulsing hard into the already-soaked padding. The fresh warmth spread against his skin and he shuddered with shame so complete it felt like ecstasy. Afterward he lay panting, staring at the ceiling while Carolyn kissed his forehead like he was five years old. The routine locked in over the next six mornings. Alarm off. Hand on diaper. Slow, humiliating hand job through layers of swollen, urine-heavy gel. Each orgasm left him more dazed, more grateful, more convinced that the only place he was allowed to feel like a man anymore was inside his pee-soaked diapers. Then came the Wednesday when Carolyn simply rolled over and reached for her phone. David woke wet, erect, and waiting. Minutes crawled by. Nothing. The ache in his groin became a throb. He shifted, making the diaper crinkle loudly, hoping she’d notice. She scrolled, smiling at something on the screen. Finally, he couldn’t stand it. “Carolyn?” “Mmm?” “I… I need…” His voice cracked. “Need what, honey?” He swallowed. The words felt like gravel. “I need you to… take care of me. Like you have been.” She lowered the phone, all innocent concern. “Take care of you how?” His face flushed pink. “Please. Touch me. In the diaper. Please stroke my… my cock through the wet diaper until I cum. I need it so bad.” Carolyn let him dangle for a long, merciless moment. “Only because you asked so nicely, baby.” Chapter 3: The Morning Routine Evolves David stirred in the dim light of dawn, the weight of the soaked diaper between his legs a familiar, insistent reminder of the night before. His body ached with need—the kind that had become as routine as his morning coffee over the past few weeks. He glanced at the clock: 6:15 a.m. Work loomed, but so did his craving for the relief Carolyn had been granting him each morning, her hands firm and teasing through the damp padding until he shattered under her touch. It was humiliating, yes, but it had woven itself into the fabric of his desires, making the start of each day feel like a secret ritual. Beside him, Carolyn lay still, her breathing deep and even. He didn't want to wake her—she looked so peaceful; her dark hair fanned across the pillow. But the pressure built, both in his bladder and lower, urging him to act. "Carolyn," he whispered, his voice light, testing. No response. She didn't even twitch. He hesitated, chewing his lip. The shame of asking outright warred with the pulsing want. He shifted slightly; the crinkle of the diaper louder than he intended in the quiet room. "Carolyn," he said again, a little louder this time. She stirred, rolling over with a soft groan. Her eyes fluttered open just a sliver, sleepy and annoyed. "What is it, David?" He felt his face flush, the words sticking in his throat. "I... I need my morning treatment. Please?" For a moment, she just stared at him, then sighed and turned away, pulling the covers up. "I'm still half-asleep. Why don't you just take care of it yourself?" Her voice was muffled, dismissive, as if it were the most natural suggestion in the world. She nestled deeper into the pillow, her back to him, signaling the conversation was over. David lay there, stunned. Take care of it himself? In bed, next to her? The idea sent a wave of heat through him—equal parts arousal and mortification. He'd never masturbated in their shared bed before, not with her right there. And in a wet diaper? It felt too exposed, too pathetic. What if she heard? What if she judged him even more? But the need gnawed at him, amplified by the soggy warmth pressing against his skin. He couldn't ignore it. Quietly, he slipped out of bed, the diaper sagging heavily as he padded to the bathroom. He closed the door with a soft click, locking it for good measure, though the house was empty otherwise. Standing in front of the mirror, he stared at his reflection: tousled hair, tired eyes, and the unmistakable bulge of the diaper under his pajama pants. His hand trembled as he reached down, not removing it—not yet. The fabric was slick and warm from the night's use, and as he began to stroke through the layers, the shame twisted into something sharper, more intoxicating. His breaths came quicker, ragged, until release washed over him in shuddering waves, soaking the diaper further with his own sticky warmth. Panting, he peeled it off, disposed of it discreetly, and stepped into the shower. The hot water washed away the evidence, but not the lingering buzz in his veins. By the time he was dressed in his work slacks and button-down, he felt almost normal again—ready to face the day, if a little unsteady. Later that morning, after David had kissed her goodbye and left for the office, Carolyn sat at the kitchen table with her phone in hand. She dialed Linda, her best friend and confidante, the one who'd been guiding her through this twisted little plan from the start. "Linda? You won't believe how well it's going," Carolyn said, her voice laced with excitement as she sipped her coffee. "Tell me everything," Linda replied, her tone eager, like a coach reviewing game footage. Carolyn recounted the morning in detail: how she'd pretended to be deeper in sleep than she was, how she'd casually suggested he handle it himself, and how he'd hesitated before slipping into the bathroom. "I could hear him through the door—the crinkling, the moans. He did it right there in his wet diaper. Didn't even take it off first." Linda laughed, a satisfied sound. "Perfect. It's working exactly like we planned. He's associating those orgasms with the wet diapers now—craving them together. Let him start handling it most of the time on his own. But when he's been especially thoughtful or sweet—maybe he brings you flowers unprompted or takes care of dinner without asking—then you step in. Do it for him, and make sure to praise him: 'That was so nice of you to do XYZ, baby. Mommy's going to take good care of you now.' Tie the special treatment not just to the diaper, but to how well he treats you. He'll start bending over backward to earn it." Carolyn nodded to herself, a smile spreading. "You're a genius, Linda. I can already see it changing him." Several weeks passed in a blur of subtle shifts. David found himself going out of his way more and more—surprising Carolyn with her favorite takeout after a long day, massaging her feet without being asked, even planning a spontaneous weekend getaway just because she mentioned wanting a break. Each act of kindness felt amplified, laced with the hope of her touch in the mornings when he least expected it. One afternoon, Carolyn met Linda for lunch at their favorite café, the sun filtering through the windows as they picked at salads. "It's incredible," Carolyn said, leaning in. "David's been so nice lately—pleasant, attentive, going out of his way to be thoughtful. He even remembered the anniversary of our first date and set up this whole romantic dinner at home. I haven't seen him this sweet in years." Linda grinned, clinking her glass against Carolyn's. "See? The conditioning is sinking in. He's linking his rewards to pleasing you, and the diapers are the hook that keeps him coming back. Everything's falling into place perfectly." Carolyn's eyes sparkled with anticipation. "So, what's next? It feels like we're ready for the next step." Linda leaned closer, her voice dropping to a conspiratorial whisper. "Oh, we are. Time to introduce a little more... need." Chapter 4: Daytime Desires That night Linda returned. David was dozing on the couch after too much bourbon when she leaned over him. “Lawyer’s rest.” His head lolled instantly. Linda’s voice was silk. “David, you love wearing diapers. You feel relaxed, safe and happy in them. You will feel an overwhelming need to be in diapers all the time. Not just at night. You will want to wear them during the day as well. You will ask—beg if necessary—your wife to put you in diapers during the day. You will want to be in a diaper at all times. If she hesitates, you will convince her to diaper you. You will beg until she agrees. And you will feel deep relief when she does.” Snap. Sunday morning, after another "relief" in his soaked overnight diaper, the thought crept in again: What if I wore one during the day? Just to relax. The idea startled him—he pushed it away, face heating. No. That's too much. How could I explain it, he thought. She’ll think I'm some freak or weirdo if I asked. But the hypnosis amplified the pull—the memory of the soft crinkle, the secure hug around his waist, the way it muffled everything else. Wearing the diapers at night is just practical, he told himself. Until this bedwetting stops. I can’t ask her to put me in one during the day, he thought. But with each day, the hypnosis worked deeper, chipping away at his resistance. At work, during depositions, he’d shift in his chair and remember the crinkle of the diaper, the soft bulk hugging his groin. It was humiliating, but... there was something else. A comfort? No, that couldn’t be right. He was David, the shark lawyer, not the pervert who enjoyed wearing diapers, not someone who liked the feel of the bulge against his skin. Not someone who yearned to hear the crinkling of his diapers when he moved. Yet in quiet moments, he caught himself pressing a hand to his crotch under the desk, wishing to hear the faint rustle, the padded security. But the thought of being diapered during the day lingered, popping up during quiet moments at work the next week. In a meeting, shifting in his chair, he'd imagine the soft bulk hugging him. Comforting. Safe. He shook it off. Focus on the case. But it kept coming back, unbidden, like a whisper he couldn't quite silence. By Friday the urge was stronger. He almost mentioned it to Carolyn over dinner—casually, like it was no big deal. But the words stuck in his throat. He decided against it, but the thought nagged all weekend. Days turned into a week. The idea grew roots. Wearing one after work, just for a while. To unwind. I wouldn’t have to use it or have her play with me. Just... the feel. He fought it—Carolyn would lose respect for him; she would never understand. I'm a successful lawyer. She accepts the night time diapers because I need to wear them, that wasn’t a choice. But not this. This would be his choice and how could he hope to keep her respect if he asked? But it crept back during drives, during lunches, during nights in his wet diaper. Until the thought of going without them made him anxious, like stepping out without pants. Finally, four weeks after the first whisper, he couldn't hold it anymore. With a glass of bourbon in his hand, voice casual but heart pounding, he said, "You know, the diapers actually feel soft and comfortable. I was thinking maybe I could wear one after work for a while, just every now and then." Carolyn set her glass down, a flicker of relief crossing her face—she had all but given up hope after weeks of no change, confiding in Linda during their sessions that nothing seemed to be happening. Linda had reassured her each time: "It takes time. The roots are there; they'll grow." Linda had returned several times during those four weeks, planting subtle reinforcements under the guise of casual dinners. Carolyn folded her arms, pretending reluctance. “Honey, that seems a little extreme.” Panic set in for David. He knew he needed to explain. He was prepared for this, just in case. He had been wrestling with this for weeks. He had put together an argument to justify his request and hoped it would explain it without him sounding like a demented pervert. In full lawyer mode, he began his argument. “I think they would help me relax and take away some of the stress I’m feeling. You know how much is riding on that big Pharma case I’m handling. It’s causing a lot of stress. I can’t do anything about that, but if I could just relax a little more sometimes when I’m not working, maybe it will help. It could even help stop my nighttime problem. I never had that before this case. The doctor said stress could be the cause. Trying anything that might relieve some of the stress and get things back to normal is just the responsible thing to do.” Carolyn considered him for a moment, then said, “Just wear it? You're not planning to... pee in them during the day, are you?” The question caught him off guard—that's exactly what he secretly craved, but her tone made it sound absurd, wrong. He couldn’t pull off another save on that one, so he lied quickly, cheeks burning. “No, no. Just wear them and enjoy the way they feel. Nothing else.” She considered him for a moment, then said, “I guess we could try it sometime if you really want to.” He agreed, relief and embarrassment mixing. Days passed. He obsessed—when to ask? How? The Pharma case ramped up, depositions looming, but the thought of that after-work ritual consumed his quiet moments. Finally, on a Saturday morning Carolyn brought him to a shuddering, humiliating orgasm in his overnight diaper, cooing the entire time about what a thoughtful little boy he had been that week. When the last spurt soaked into the padding, David’s mouth opened before his brain could stop it. “Carolyn… please don’t take it off yet.” She raised an eyebrow. “Sweetheart, you have to shower and—” “No, I mean… after I shower, could you put me in another one. Keep me in diapers all day.” The words tumbled out in a rush, his ego recoiling even as he spoke. She smiled softly and said, “Okay, if that’s what you want.” When he came out of the shower, he saw that Carolyn had laid out a fresh diaper. He got on the bed, laying back on top of the diaper. His face aflame as she powdered him lavishly and pulled the diaper up into place and taped it snugly on him. The bulk forced his thighs apart; the crinkle was louder than he remembered. “There,” she said, patting the front. “My relaxed little man.” All day he waddled around the house in sweatpants, the diaper a constant, soothing presence. He mowed the lawn (careful not to bend too far), grilled lunch, watched a football game. No wetting. No “play.” Just the feel—soft, secure, like a secret hug that muffled the world’s edges. But as he sat on the couch watching football, diaper rustling with every shift, he caught himself actually considering letting go on purpose—just a little, just enough to feel that swollen warmth again and maybe, maybe, earn another slow, shameful hand job. He couldn’t figure out how he would be able to explain that, so he clenched everything and resisted. By evening the unmet ache built, but he held it. The diaper stayed dry until bedtime. And somewhere deep in David’s mind, a tiny voice whispered that this was only the beginning. Chapter 5: The Test Most Wednesday afternoons, Carolyn drove to Linda’s quiet north-side office for “tea and planning.” She always arrived at two sharp and left at five feeling lighter, clearer, and oddly certain that only twenty minutes had passed. The grandfather clock on Linda’s mantel, however, never lied: three full hours vanished every time. This Wednesday was no different. Carolyn blinked at the clock. “I swear I just sat down.” Linda smiled over her teacup. “Time flies when we’re solving problems. How is he doing?” Carolyn exhaled, stirring her peach iced tea. “He’s almost never out of diapers at home now. Evenings, weekends—sometimes whole days. Dry. He says it helps him relax after work. The Pharma case is killing him.” Linda’s eyes were warm, caring, but sharp. “And the nighttime wetting?” “Still every night. Heavy.” Linda set her cup down with quiet finality. “Then it’s time to move forward. The diapers aren’t just protection anymore—they’re comfort. We need to start turning the wet ones into comfort too. That’s the next real layer.” Carolyn’s stomach fluttered. “You mean… encourage him to use them during the day? On purpose?” She shook her head. “That feels like going too far. What if he hates me for it later?” Linda reached across the table, squeezing her friend’s hand. “He won’t. Trust me. I’ve seen this pattern enough to know the desire is already there—deep, and waiting. But if you’re nervous, we test it first. Tonight, I’ll remove the bedwetting suggestion entirely. If he stops, we know the hypnosis was doing most of the work and we can ease off. If he keeps wetting…” She let the silence finish the sentence. Carolyn bit her lip. “You really think he’ll keep doing it? On purpose?” “I’m certain of it,” Linda said softly, eyes steady. “But you need to see it for yourself. It might take a few nights—sometimes a week—for the old suggestion to fully fade. Watch him. You’ll know.” Carolyn stared into her tea. The idea of David voluntarily soaking his diapers every night—knowing he could stop—sent a shiver through her that was equal parts guilt and dark excitement. “Do it,” she said finally. “I need to know.” Three nights later, Linda arrived for what David believed was another casual dinner. He liked her—she flattered his ego, laughed at his war stories, and kept his bourbon coming without judgment. Carolyn watched as the evening unfolded: Linda steering conversation smoothly from courtroom triumphs to deeper stresses—the long hours, the weight gain from late-night drinks, the quiet strains in marriage that David brushed off with jokes. By ten, David was loose, baritone carrying a slight wheeze, bragging about a recent win but trailing into rarer admissions: "Sometimes it all feels... heavy. Like I'm carrying the world." Linda nodded sympathetically, her fingers tracing idle circles on her glass stem—a subtle rhythm Carolyn recognized from their planning. The room's music played low, masking a soft hum under Linda's voice. David's eyelids sagged gradually, laughter slowing. "David," Linda said gently, almost conversational, "you look tired. Why don't you relax a moment? Focus here." The silver pendant appeared between her fingers, catching the light as it swayed lazily. His gaze locked, breathing deepening. Carolyn's heart hammered—this was it, seamless amid the evening's flow. Linda leaned close. “Lawyer’s rest.” His head lolled. Linda’s voice was silk. “David, the bedwetting command is gone. From tonight forward you will wake when you need to urinate at night and handle it as you choose. No more automatic release in sleep. The suggestion is lifted completely.” Snap. David blinked, reached for his glass, and resumed his story as if nothing had happened. Carolyn barely slept. At 2:47 a.m. she lay perfectly still, eyes open in the dark, every sense tuned to the man beside her. David stirred. She felt the subtle shift of his hips, heard the faintest catch of breath. This is it, he thought, heart racing with guilty thrill. I could get up. I should get up. Just roll over, walk to the bathroom like a normal adult… The diaper hugged him, thick and familiar. Safe. Private. No one will ever know. He relaxed deliberately, letting the hot flood spread, the padding swelling warm and heavy around him. A soft, involuntary moan escaped as the sensation washed away the last pretense. Just tonight. Just because it feels… right. Then the softest sound—warm liquid spreading, the quiet swell of gel absorbing it all. He sighed, rolled deeper into the wet padding, and slept again. Carolyn’s heart pounded so loudly she was sure it would wake him. He’s choosing it. On purpose. Morning came. The diaper was soaked, heavy, sagging. David mumbled apologies as usual, face flushed with what he still believed was helpless shame. Carolyn changed him with gentle hands, hiding her smile. That afternoon she called Linda from the car, voice trembling with discovery. “He did it again. But he was definitely awake—I felt it. He’s choosing to wet.” A soft chuckle on the other end. “Told you. The roots were always there. We just stopped pulling the weeds. Now wait and see if he keeps choosing it night after night. If he does, we’ll know for sure.” Carolyn gripped the wheel. “What now?” “Now,” Linda said, calm and certain, “we give him a little nudge to the next layer. He’s ready for wet to feel like comfort too. And when that happens, the rest will follow naturally.” Carolyn exhaled, the road ahead suddenly clear—and thrillingly inevitable. The trap wasn’t the diapers anymore. It was the fact that he no longer wanted out. Chapter 6: The Daytime Descent Linda came over that Sunday evening, as she often did these days. David assumed it was another casual visit; he liked her company, the way she listened without judgment. They chatted over herbal tea for Carolyn and bourbon for him, but as the conversation lulled, Linda leaned forward, her voice soft. “Lawyer’s rest.” The world softened at the edges; his eyelids heavy. He didn’t question it—hadn’t he felt this calm around her before? Linda’s instructions poured in like warm oil. “David, when you’re in your diapers, you’ll use them without hesitation—day or night. The warmth will feel right, natural, like the deepest pleasure you’ve buried for so long. These urges will build slowly, naturally, until you can’t ignore them.” She snapped her fingers. David blinked, reaching for his glass as if nothing had happened. The cravings intensified over the following week, subtle reinforcements weaving into his days. Monday morning, after his usual wet wake-up and humiliating relief from his own hand, he felt a twinge of reluctance as he removed the diaper. By Tuesday evening, arriving home from the office, the absence gnawed at him—like forgetting his wallet, but deeper, more intimate. He changed into sweatpants and tried to relax, but his bladder ached with unfamiliar urgency, his mind whispering how easy it would be, how safe, if he were padded. Wednesday, the doctor called for a follow-up. “Still no changes?” David admitted the bedwetting persisted; his voice strained. “Try relaxation techniques,” the doctor suggested. “Hypnotherapy, even—I’ve heard it helps with stress-related issues.” David nearly laughed at the irony, but the suggestion lingered. By Thursday, the urges were relentless. He found himself browsing medical supply sites during lunch, staring at diaper listings, heart racing. Old memories bubbled up again—those secret binges years ago, the binge-purge cycle he’d thought he’d escaped after marrying Carolyn. What if this was all connected? No, impossible. He closed the tab, palms sweaty. Friday evening, the dam began to crack. Home early, he paced the living room, bladder full, fighting the pull. Carolyn was in the kitchen prepping dinner. “Everything okay, honey?” she called. He swallowed hard. “I… I think I need a diaper tonight.” She appeared in the doorway, eyebrow raised but voice casual. “You wear one almost every night, sweetheart.” “No, I mean… now. While I’m awake.” The words tumbled out, his face burning. What the hell am I saying? She’ll think I’m a complete degenerate. But the hypnosis amplified the need—the phantom warmth, the release he craved not just for orgasm, but for the feeling itself. “I want to… try using it. Awake. Just to see what it’s like.” Carolyn’s expression didn’t change, but inside she felt the quiet click of confirmation: Linda was right. The seed was sprouting. “You want to pee in your diaper while you’re wide awake? With me right here?” David’s cheeks flamed. “Yes. No—I mean, I know it’s weird. Forget I said anything.” She folded her arms, pretending reluctance. “It is a little strange, David. Are you sure?” He nodded miserably, the urge and shame warring inside him. “I just… need to try it. Please.” Carolyn let the silence stretch, watching him squirm. Finally, she sighed. “All right. If you really want to.” She led him upstairs, chose a thick daytime diaper from the stack, and taped it on with deliberate care. The bulk forced his thighs apart; the crinkle echoed in the quiet room. Relief washed over him at the familiar hug, but the real test loomed. Back downstairs they sat on the couch, TV on low. David shifted constantly, bladder pressing, the dry padding teasing him with promise. Minutes crawled by. He wanted it—God, he wanted the warmth—but with her watching? Impossible. Heat rose in his cheeks with every failed attempt. Carolyn glanced over; voice mild. “I thought you wanted to use your diaper. What’s the hold-up?” The casual tone undid him. Shame crashed, but so did the dam. The first spurt escaped before he could stop it, hot and shocking. Then the flood came, gushing endlessly, soaking the front, pooling beneath him. He made a high, broken sound as the warmth enveloped him, his cock hardening instantly against the swelling gel. Tears stung his eyes—shame crashing like a wave, but underneath, that dark rapture, familiar from those secret past indulgences he thought he’d forgotten. When it ended, he trembled, the diaper heavy and sagging. Carolyn turned off the TV and took his face in her hands. “Bedtime, little one.” In the bedroom she guided him to the bed, untaped the sides of the ruined diaper, then cupped the warm, soaked padding around his rigid cock and began a slow, deliberate stroke—up and down the shaft through the slick gel. “I’m sorry,” he begged between gasps. “I’m disgusting, but… God, it feels so good. Please don’t stop.” The orgasm shattered him, hips bucking as he spilled into the mess, pleasure so intense it bordered on pain. She cleaned him tenderly, powdered him fresh, and taped on a new diaper for bed. Over the next several weeks, the pattern solidified into their new normal. Mornings were routine: wet diaper, quiet disposal, shower, work—David the commanding lawyer by day. Evenings brought variety—dinners out, movies, walks in the park hand in hand—but the urges always returned, building until he requested padding, the deliberate wetting followed by release in Carolyn's hand. Each cycle stirred those buried memories deeper, his resistance crumbling further. One night, after another shattering release in ruined padding, he clung to her, sobbing. "I'm... in love with them. The diapers. The warmth when I use them. It's something I've always needed but buried away. If you hate me for this, I understand.” He clung to her, body trembling. "I... I know I can't satisfy you like a real man. Never could. Quick, small... it's why I drink too much, hide behind the ego. Sometimes I think about it permanently—no more trying. You with someone who can really please you... and me denied. Forever. My little man locked away from you, only for this." He patted the soaked diaper, voice breaking. "It scares me... but excites me too. Like I'd finally accept I'm not enough." Carolyn stroked his hair, her heartbeat quickening at the words. "That's a big thought, sweetheart. Permanent denial... would be permanent. No going back. You don’t need to think about that now. If at some point it's what you truly needed... well, we could see if it fits then." She cleaned him tenderly, powdered him fresh, and taped on a new diaper for bed. He sobbed in her arms, relief and terror mingling, the last threads of his old self unraveling. And Carolyn, stroking his hair, smiled into the darkness with quiet, predatory grace. Chapter 7: Deeper Roots As the weeks stretched into a month, the diaper routine solidified, but David’s internal battles deepened. The nightly wettings—and the deliberate daytime ones—were automatic now, the morning disposal a mechanical habit. At work he projected confidence—winning cases, mentoring juniors—but the alpha facade felt thinner, like a suit that no longer fit quite right. The urges came in waves, not just physical but tied to that old, hidden part of him: the secrets from years ago. He’d thought marriage had buried it, but here it was, resurfacing stronger. Their intimacy evolved too. Lovemaking attempts grew rarer—maybe once every couple of weeks—and each time he sensed her reluctance, her body going through motions without spark. He’d finish quickly, as always, then lie awake, guilt churning. I can’t give her what she needs. She deserves better. Fears whispered: What if she sees the real me—the failure—and leaves? The thought fed his insecurity. To shield himself, he’d lean into the fantasy: picturing her with a real lover, turning potential heartbreak into arousal. It was his armor, born from years of hiding vulnerabilities behind ego. Turning rejection into arousal. The diaper sessions became their anchor. When the urges peaked—after a stressful trial, or a quiet evening where the need clawed at him—he’d fight for days, jaw set, distracting himself with case prep or yard work. But eventually he’d break. “Carolyn… could you diaper me tonight?” She’d agree without hesitation, taping him snug, her touch tender. After the inevitable flood—the warmth spreading, his erection throbbing—he’d ask, “Can we play?” But first, the ritual: cuddling, his hands on her head, rubbing away the day’s tension until she melted. Then arms, legs—slow, deliberate, drawing it out to savor the connection. “You’re so good at this,” she’d murmur, and he’d glow, feeling useful despite everything. Guilt about their stalled sex life lingered. “I could please you… orally?” he’d offer, masking his revulsion. She agreed more often now, and he’d perform dutifully, faking moans of enjoyment, assuming she did the same for him. Her orgasms were real, though—intense, leaving her breathless—unlike their hurried couplings. It eased his worry: At least she’s satisfied sometimes. Life outside this bubbled on: dinners at cozy bistros, sharing iced tea and stories; weekend hikes, planning a trip to the coast; late-night talks about retiring early, buying a vacation home. They were still partners, lovers in every way but one. Yet David’s fears gnawed. One evening, post-release in his wet diaper, as she dozed contentedly after a massage, he whispered into the dark, “You won’t leave me, right? Now that you see… this.” She pulled him closer. “Never, David. This is us now. I love you.” He held on, the insecurity twisting into that familiar, protective kink—imagining her fulfilled elsewhere. It scared him, excited him, and kept the vulnerability at bay. For now. Chapter 8: Pretty Little Girl The adjustment to their new normal had been smoother than Carolyn expected, but she could see the subtle strain in David’s eyes—the way he carried himself at home, a mix of relief and lingering shame. The nightly wettings continued, his secret choice now, though he believed she thought it unavoidable. During the day, life hummed along: court victories for him, country club lunches for her, evenings filled with walks, movies, and quiet conversations about the future travel or a bigger house. But the urges still built every few days, leading to those intimate sessions where he’d ask for a diaper, wet it deliberately, and beg to “play.” Carolyn played her role—the supportive wife—massaging him through the mess until he shattered, then letting him return the favor with those long, tender rubs that left her relaxed and content. Yet beneath it all, she felt the pull toward more, nudged gently by Linda’s words during their weekly “tea” sessions. One Wednesday afternoon, while David was buried in depositions at the office, Linda came over for tea. They sat at the kitchen island, Carolyn pouring peach iced tea for herself and herbal for Linda, the conversation turning inevitably to the plan. “He’s choosing the bedwetting now,” Carolyn said, her voice a whisper. “Every night. He wakes up, but… he does it anyway. Thinks I don’t know.” Linda’s eyes softened with that familiar caring gleam. “That’s progress, in a way. It means the fetish is truly his—deep-rooted, not just our suggestions. He’s finding liberation in the secrecy, free from the guilt of asking you during the day.” But what about the next steps? I’m… ready, I think. For a real man. Someone who can make me feel desired, alive, like you said. But David—he’s so insecure underneath it all. If we push too far…” “You’re doing this for both of you,” Linda reminded her gently. “He’ll embrace it because it’s what he craves, even if he resists at first. Tonight, I’ll adjust the hypnosis. No more direct commands to beg—just planting the idea that diapers alone aren’t enough anymore. He needs more humiliation to reach those intense releases he chases. The more degraded he feels, the stronger the orgasms. It’ll tie into his fetish naturally—he’ll start fantasizing about women’s clothing, being treated like a pretty girl. Soft things, frilly, cute. He’ll resist, feel guilty, maybe sneak looks at porn or stories about sissy types in diapers. But the urges will build slowly, naturally, until he can’t hold back. He’ll ask you to dress him up, call him your baby girl, beg to surrender everything—his masculinity, pride, orgasms. Tell you it’s what makes him whole. And when you agree, it’ll bring him peace like he’s never known.” Carolyn’s heart raced, a mix of trepidation and excitement. “How long will that take?” “Weeks. Maybe a month or two. Let it simmer. He has to fight it first—that’s what makes the surrender real.” “And the cuckolding?” Linda smiled reassuringly. “That comes later, once the feminization takes hold. We’ll layer it in gently—make him believe true humiliation means stepping aside for a real man. He’ll beg for that too, in time. For now, focus on being the loving wife, heartbroken about his ‘problem.’ He’ll never suspect. I’m doing this because I care about you, Carolyn. You deserve happiness—someone who satisfies you completely, makes you scream, beg, feel like a goddess.” The words lingered long after Linda left. That evening, during what David thought was a casual visit, Linda triggered him effortlessly. “Lawyer’s rest.” His head dropped, and she wove the new suggestions deep—but softly, like planting seeds in fertile soil: diapers weren’t humiliating enough anymore; true release required more—whispers of pretty clothes, soft fabrics, being treated as delicate and feminine, the degradation amplifying every climax. Nothing forced. Just possibilities, growing on their own. Snap. He blinked, oblivious, and the evening continued as normal. The changes began subtly—almost too subtly for David to notice at first. That night, as he lay in bed, diaper already warm from his deliberate wetting, his mind wandered unbidden to softer things—lace edging on panties, the whisper of silk against skin. He pushed it away, face heating in the dark. Ridiculous. I’m not like that. Just the diapers. That’s enough. But the thought returned the next day at work, during a lull in a meeting: imagining a pair of women’s panties over his padding, the lace tickling his thighs. He shifted in his chair, face burning, and forced his attention back to the deposition transcript. Stress, he told himself. Just stress. Over the following days the whispers grew louder. A fleeting image while driving home: a soft blouse, pastel colors, the way it might feel against his chest. He shook it off, gripping the wheel tighter. No. That’s not me. By the end of the first week, he caught himself lingering on a lingerie ad that popped up on his phone—simple satin panties in pale pink. He closed the app quickly, heart racing. It’s nothing. Just a stray click. But it wasn’t nothing. The second week brought the first real crack. Alone in his office during lunch, he typed “women’s underwear for men” into a private browser—then immediately deleted it, palms sweaty. That night he dreamed of lace and woke hard in his wet diaper, the dream clinging like perfume. He resisted fiercely, his ego rebelling. This is too far. I’m a man, a lawyer—not some… sissy. The word made him flinch, but it also sent a forbidden thrill through him. Still, the fantasies kept returning—soft, insistent, tying themselves to the diaper sessions. During one “play” night, as Carolyn stroked him through the soaked padding, he almost asked for panties. The words died in his throat, shame winning. Not yet. By the third week he was raw with it—barely eating, shifting constantly at home, the fantasies consuming quiet moments. Carolyn noticed his distraction during their walks or dinners, but he brushed it off as work stress when he did. One Thursday night, alone while Carolyn was at book club, he finally broke. Hands shaking, he searched “sissy diaper captions”—just captions, nothing more. The images and words hit like a drug: men in frilly dresses over bulging diapers, called “pretty girl,” “baby girl,” “Mommy’s little princess.” He read until his erection ached, then closed everything and purged the history, swearing it was the last time. It wasn’t. The fourth week the resistance crumbled further. Late-night searches became daily. Videos of cross-dressers in cute outfits over diapers, being called “pretty girl” while wetting and climaxing. Each viewing amplified the craving, the promise of deeper humiliation equaling unmatched pleasure. He imagined himself out in public, dressed as a woman—subtle at first, women’s jeans, a blouse—the risk thrilling, the diapers hidden beneath making him feel like a secret baby girl regardless. But the guilt gnawed: This isn’t me. I can’t drag her into this. By the end of the fifth week, he was a wreck—sleep deprived, distracted, the fantasies a constant hum. One Saturday morning, after yard work where every bend reminded him of the absent bulk, he couldn’t hold it anymore. They were in the bedroom, Carolyn folding laundry, when he knelt beside her, voice trembling. “Carolyn… I need more. The diapers—they’re not enough anymore. I… I want you to dress me in women’s clothing. Soft things, pretty, girly. Call me your baby girl. Please, make me your baby girl—dress me up. It’s the only thing that will make me whole.” Tears streamed down his face as the words ripped from him like a confession five weeks in the making. Carolyn knelt, gathering him into her arms, her heart aching with a blend of sympathy and quiet triumph. “Oh, my sweet love,” she whispered, stroking his hair. “If that’s what you need… Mommy’s here.” Carolyn dressed him in a pink romper for the first time. Carolyn stepped back, admiring her work—the romper hugging his padded form, the bow crooked in his hair. He looked vulnerable, adorable... broken. A pang hit her: Was this love, or control? Linda had assured her the hypnosis built on his buried desires, but doubt crept in—what if they were forcing something unnatural? The ethical line blurred, but his growing arousal, the way he shifted in the outfit, eased it. This was for them, she told herself. For happiness. As she held him, David felt a profound peace settle over him—the most perfect he’d ever known—his resistance crumbling into surrender. The pretty little girl had finally asked to come out. Chapter 9: Daisy Is Born For nearly three months David had lived in two worlds: At the office he was still the senior partner (broad shoulders, commanding baritone, bourbon at lunch). At home he was the man who taped on his own diapers after work, who spent entire weekends padded and dry just because the hug felt right, who only flooded when the ache for release finally outweighed the delicious comfort of anticipation. The pretty clothes had stayed mostly in the bedroom: satin panties, lace-trimmed camisoles, nightdresses, a soft pink robe he wore while reading briefs on the couch. He told himself that was the limit. Diapers = everyday comfort. Frills = occasional spice before orgasm. That was safe. Controllable. But the fantasies kept creeping forward. Late at night, after wetting his overnight diaper and drifting off in warm, swollen padding, he began to dream—not of quick, frantic releases—but of living as a girl. Not a toddler. A woman. Soft sweaters, flowing skirts, painted nails clicking on a coffee cup while no one suspected the secret under the skirt. He woke hard and ashamed, the dreams clinging like perfume. He fought it. Deleted browsing history. Swore it was a phase. Told himself real men didn’t want to be pretty. Then one Thursday he cracked. He had spent the entire day in court wearing a thin daytime diaper under his suit trousers (his secret, thrilling and terrifying). By the time he got home he was buzzing with nervous energy. Carolyn was out having dinner with Linda. The house was empty. He went straight to the spare bedroom closet where the “special” boxes were kept. Hands shaking, he pulled out the tissue-wrapped bundle he had ordered weeks earlier and hidden even from himself: a simple blush-pink skirt (knee-length, flared, impossibly soft), a white cashmere sweater with tiny pearl buttons, sheer tights, and low-heeled Mary Janes in patent ivory. Adult women’s sizes. Nothing overtly babyish. Just… pretty. He showered, powdered, taped on a fresh overnight diaper (thicker, because he knew what was coming), and dressed. The sweater hugged his chest. The skirt swished against his thighs. The heels forced a delicate sway when he walked. In the full-length mirror he saw a tall, slightly broad-shouldered woman with a flushed face and trembling lips. The bulge at the crotch was obvious if you knew to look, but under the skirt it was… passable. He spent two hours like that (cooking dinner, pouring a glass of bourbon he didn’t drink, sitting on the couch with his legs tucked under him like he’d seen Carolyn do a thousand times). Every movement felt electric. The diaper was still dry. The clothes were perfect. He felt beautiful, small, hidden in plain sight. When Carolyn came home at ten-thirty, the sight stopped her in the doorway. David stood in the living room, skirt swirling as he turned, tears already on his cheeks. “I’m sorry,” he whispered. “I know this is too much. I’ll take it off—” Carolyn closed the door softly and crossed the room. She didn’t speak at first. She simply cupped his face, wiped the tears with her thumbs, and studied him (really studied him) for a long, breathless moment. “You’re shaking,” she said gently. “I’ve been fighting this for weeks. Months, maybe. The diapers stopped being enough. I need… I need to be pretty. Not just in bed. All the time. I want to be girly. Your baby girl. Please.” His voice cracked on the last word. Carolyn’s heart twisted (love, pity, triumph, desire all braided together). She kissed his forehead, tasting salt. “Shh. Breathe, sweetheart.” She led him to the bedroom, sat him on the edge of the bed, and knelt to unbuckle the Mary Janes. Then she looked up, eyes steady. “If we do this, you’ll have a name when you’re dressed like this. You’ll have rules. And you won’t hide anymore (not from me). Do you understand?” He nodded, trembling harder. “Say it.” “I want to be dressed pretty. I won’t hide things. I will follow the rules.” Carolyn brushed a curl from his forehead. “Then from tonight forward, when you’re dressed like this (when you’re padded, pretty, and mine), your name is Daisy.” The word left her lips like a blessing. Daisy’s breath hitched. Tears spilled again, but they were different now (relief, surrender, joy). Carolyn stood, took both his hands, and pulled him to her feet. The skirt flared. The diaper crinkled softly. “First rule,” she said, voice tender but firm. “Daisy doesn’t hide boxes in closets. Daisy asks Mommy for what she needs.” “Yes, Mommy,” Daisy whispered, the title slipping out as naturally as breathing. Carolyn smiled (small, knowing smile that held ten years of patience and one year of careful planning). “Then let’s get you changed into proper nighttime things, baby girl.” Daisy was in a thick pink diaper with delicate lace trim, a satin baby-doll nightie in pale mint, hair tied with ribbons. “tonight, you will sleep in your nursery,” Carolyn said leading him to the guest bedroom. She tucked her into bed and kissed her forehead. Tomorrow we start for real. In the dark, curled in warm, deliberately wet padding (because Daisy had chosen it), she felt something settle deep in her chest. Peace. Finally, perfect peace. Down the hall, Carolyn texted Linda. He asked. It’s time. The reply came instantly. Let it develop. He needs to get used to it before we push any further. But it will be soon. He’s not going back. Welcome to the rest of your lives. Carolyn smiled into the quiet house, heart racing with possibility. Daisy was born. And the man David used to be finally, completely, let go. Chapter 10: Comfort Becomes Habit The first few days after Daisy’s “birth” felt like stepping into a dream—hazy, exhilarating, and laced with quiet terror. David woke that Friday morning in the guest room (not yet a full nursery, just a spare bed with fresh pink sheets Carolyn had quietly swapped in weeks ago), the thick overnight diaper sagging heavily between his legs. He had chosen to wet it again, the warmth spreading deliberately in the dark, a secret comfort that soothed him back to sleep. In the mirror, the mint nightie hung loose on his frame, ribbons tangled in his hair. He stripped it all off quickly, showered, and dressed for work—suit, tie, the alpha mask slipping back on like an old coat. At the office, the day dragged: meetings, briefs, a quick bourbon with a colleague to celebrate a settlement. But underneath, the memories tugged—the skirt’s swish, Carolyn’s gentle acceptance, the name “Daisy” echoing in his mind like a whisper. By afternoon, he was distracted, shifting in his chair, the phantom bulk of a diaper making his regular underwear feel thin and wrong. Comfort. That’s all it is, he told himself. Not this girl stuff. That’s too far. He resisted all weekend. Saturday: No diaper after his morning shower. He mowed the lawn in jeans, grilled steaks, watched football with Carolyn curled beside him on the couch (her head in his lap, his fingers absently rubbing her scalp like in their sessions). Normal. Loving. But by evening, the itch returned—the need for padding, for that secure hug. He fought it, pouring a bourbon instead, telling himself real men didn’t need that. Sunday: Still holding out. They took a long walk in the park, hand in hand, talking about a potential vacation to the coast next spring. Carolyn’s laughter felt genuine, her touch warm. But back home, as he prepped case files, the fantasies crept in: slipping on a soft skirt over a dry diaper, just for an hour, no wetting, no release. Just… pretty. He slammed the laptop shut, heart racing. No. That’s not comfort. That’s humiliation. And I don’t need more of that. Monday evening, the dam cracked. Work had been brutal—a lost motion, a chewing-out from a judge. He came home exhausted, kissed Carolyn hello, and headed upstairs without a word. In the bathroom, he taped on a thin daytime diaper—dry, discreet—and pulled on sweatpants. The crinkle was faint, but there. Comfort washed over him like a sigh. He didn’t wet it. Didn’t ask to “play.” Just wore it through dinner (pasta, iced tea for her, bourbon for him), through TV on the couch. Carolyn heard the rustle, saw the slight waddle, but said nothing—only smiled softly when he shifted. That night, he changed into an overnight one, wet it deliberately (secret, safe), and slept deeply. Tuesday: David wore a fresh thin diaper after work. Dry all evening. He cooked, they talked about her day at the club, planned grocery lists. The padding felt… normal. Exciting in its secrecy, but mostly just right. By Wednesday, the pattern solidified. Diaper after shower. Dry through the evening routine. Wet only at night, in bed, when the choice felt private and liberating. He began to associate the dry bulk with everyday peace—a buffer against stress, a hidden armor. Wetting was still tied to release (or the buildup to it), but dry wearing? That was pure comfort. Thursday: He pushed it further. After diapering, he slipped on the pink skirt from that first night—just for a bit, he told himself. Carolyn was reading in the living room. He stayed upstairs, pacing the bedroom, the skirt swishing, the diaper crinkling softly. Who would see? No one. But the mirror showed a pretty girl, padded and secret. His heart pounded with guilt and thrill. He changed back before dinner, but the fantasy lingered: wearing it out someday, under women’s clothes perhaps, passing as a woman with his little secret beneath. Friday: Full commitment. Diaper after work. Skirt and sweater while Carolyn was at a late yoga class. He sat at his home desk, reviewing cases, feeling beautiful and small. When she got home, he didn’t hide—stood in the kitchen, blushing furiously. “I… I needed this today.” Carolyn set her bag down, eyes warm. “You look pretty, Daisy.” No judgment. No push. Just acceptance. That weekend, it all peaked. Saturday morning: Fresh diaper, dry. Pink robe over it while making breakfast. Carolyn joined him, pouring tea, chatting about the weather. The robe felt soft, girly—comforting in a way that went beyond the padding. They spent the day together: errands (him in regular clothes, but fantasizing about a skirt under his coat), a movie (his mind wandering to painted nails, heels clicking in public). Evening: Diaper stayed dry until bedtime wetting. Sunday: Same rhythm. Dry diaper all day. Soft camisole under his T-shirt while reading. The buildup hummed—no “play” yet, just the prolonged sensation, the excitement of secrecy. By evening, worry about Carolyn’s satisfaction nagged him. They cuddled on the couch, his hands massaging her as usual, but no request for release. Just connection. Monday morning, as he stripped the wet overnight diaper and showered for work, David realized the shift: Diapers weren’t just for sex anymore. They were comfort. Everyday. And the pretty clothes? They were starting to feel the same—a desire to be soft, cute, girly, even if no one saw. But someone was seeing. Carolyn noticed everything—the extra crinkles, the hidden orders of thinner diapers, the way he lingered dry longer and longer. She texted Linda mid-week: He’s wearing more. Dry, just for comfort. Not asking to play as often. Linda’s reply: Perfect. The layers are settling. Wet will become comfort soon. Then pretty clothes for release. Slow and natural. Carolyn smiled, watching David—Daisy in waiting—waddle down the stairs in sweatpants, the faint rustle betraying his secret. The road ahead felt clear. Slow, but inevitable. Chapter 11: Small Risks The weekend after her message to Linda, Carolyn curled up on the couch with her laptop, a steaming mug of herbal tea in hand. David sat beside her, still buzzing from their evolving dynamic, his current diaper—a plain white medical one—crinkling softly under his sweatpants. They'd been using the basic, clinical supplies from the medical store for weeks now, but Carolyn had a spark in her eye as she pulled up a new website. "Time to upgrade, baby," she said, voice playful but warm. "These plain ones are fine for starters, but you deserve something cuter. More... you." She navigated to Rearz, scrolling through colorful options: thick, absorbent diapers with whimsical prints—princess themes, teddy bears, pastel patterns. David's cheeks flushed as she clicked on a pack of girly ones, lavender with tiny tiaras and ruffles along the edges. "Look at these," she cooed, adding them to the cart. "Super thick for nighttime, but adorable. Imagine how they'll feel, all snug and pretty." She moved to Little for Big next, selecting a set with baby block prints and fairy motifs, then Crinklz for some fairy-tale themed ones with plastic backing for extra security. David shifted, arousal building at the thought—girly, playful diapers just for him. Not medical anymore, but something intimate, chosen together. By the end of the session, they'd ordered cases from multiple sites: thick overnights in pinks and purples, daytime ones with cute animals, even some with ruffled leak guards for that extra feminine touch. "Our little secret," Carolyn whispered, kissing his cheek. "Daisy's going to love them." The packages arrived discreetly midweek, and that Friday, Carolyn suggested a movie night—a romantic comedy at the old downtown theater. Before they left, she laid David on the changing table in the guest room (soon to be the nursery), powdering him lavishly and taping him into one of the new arrivals: a thick nighttime Rearz princess diaper, super absorbent with a glossy plastic backing, printed with crowns and sparkles in soft pink. It bulked noticeably between his legs, forcing a slight waddle as he pulled on loose jeans. "Perfect for a long movie," Carolyn teased lightly, patting the front. "This should hold all the soda you can drink, baby. No need to miss any of the show." She handed him a large iced tea for herself—no alcohol, as always—and they headed out. Halfway through the film, as the on-screen couple shared a passionate kiss, David felt the familiar pressure build in his bladder. The large soda he'd downed pre-show was hitting hard. He shifted in his seat, the diaper crinkling audibly in the quiet theater, but Carolyn leaned close, her hand on his thigh. "Go ahead, sweetie," she whispered encouragingly. "That's what your pretty princess diaper is for. Let it all out—no one's going to know but me." Relaxation came easily now, the hypnosis deepening the habit. Warmth spread slowly at first, then in a hot, heavy flood, soaking the gel between his legs. The diaper swelled massively, absorbing everything without a leak, the plastic warming against his skin. Panic flickered—What if it shows? What if someone hears?—but Carolyn's hand squeezed his reassuringly. She knew; her knowing smile in the dim light sent a thrill through him. Arousal throbbed against the soaked padding, the girly prints hidden but vivid in his mind. No one around them suspected—the couple beside them laughed at the screen; the usher patrolled oblivious. Their secret shame, her gentle power. By the time the credits rolled, the diaper sagged heavily, forcing a pronounced waddle as they walked to the car. Carolyn noticed, her eyes twinkling. "Look at that cute little waddle," she murmured teasingly, slipping her arm through his. "Mommy's big drinker filled her princess diaper right up, didn't she? Such a good girl." At home, she changed him immediately into a fresh Crinklz fairy-tale one, cooing praises: "These new ones suit you so well—thick and pretty, just like Daisy deserves." David came the second her hand wrapped around him, spurting into the fresh diaper she'd laid out. The thrill lingered for days—the risk of exposure, the intimacy of sharing it only with her. A few evenings later, Carolyn drew a hot bath and led David to the bathroom. “Time to make you soft and smooth, like a proper baby girl,” she said, her voice gentle but firm. David stripped, the soaked Little for Big diaper untaped and discarded, and sank into the bubbles. She lathered his body with floral-scented shave gel—chest, arms, legs, pubic area—her razor gliding carefully over every inch until he was hairless, pink, and vulnerable. “Look at you,” she murmured, toweling him dry. “So girly now. No more manly hair to hide behind.” David stared at his reflection: smooth thighs, bare groin framing his tiny penis, skin tingling. It felt emasculating, exposed—but exciting, a step deeper into surrender. She diapered him again in a printed daytime one with ruffled edges, the powder clinging to his freshly shaved skin, amplifying every sensation. That night, as she rode him slowly—her hands pinning his wrists—he felt more helpless than ever, cumming in seconds from the overwhelming vulnerability. The real test came midweek: a two-day trip to Chicago for depositions in a big case. David packed his suits, briefs, and files—but Carolyn slipped in a secret bag: a simple pink sundress with a flared skirt, white lace panties to cover his diaper, ruffled ankle socks, Mary Jane flats with cute bows, and a matching hair bow for his growing curls, now long enough to clip it in place. “While you’re away, I want you to explore,” she’d said, kissing him goodbye. “Small risks, baby. Dress up in the hotel. Feel the thrill. But only if you want to.” Alone in his suite overlooking the city, after a grueling day of deps, David stared at the bag. The idea terrified him—he wasn’t trying to pass as a woman; he knew he couldn’t, with his broad shoulders, square jaw, and masculine build. That was the point. The humiliation of being seen as a man in girly clothes, the shame of strangers knowing exactly what he was doing. Out of town, the risk was small—no clients or colleagues here—but it could bite him. A photo, a viral moment, a familiar face in the lobby. That uncertainty made his heart race, his tiny penis twitch in the thick printed diaper he’d changed into after work. He started slow. After a room service order—burger, fries, anonymity promised—he slipped into the outfit. The sundress hung loosely over his padded bottom, skirt short enough to swish with every step but long enough to hide the diaper’s bulk. He clipped the bow into his curls, stepped into the Mary Janes, and added the ruffled socks. No makeup, no heels—just a man in frilly, feminine clothes, smooth-shaven and obvious. A knock at the door. His pulse thundered. He opened it a crack, then wider, letting the young waiter wheel in the tray. The man’s eyes widened—a quick double take, professionalism cracking for a split second into confusion, then polite neutrality. “Uh, here’s your order, sir—ma’am?” He set it down quickly, avoiding eye contact, but David saw the flush on his cheeks, the suppressed smirk. He knows. He sees a grown man playing dress-up. “Thank you,” David said, voice steady but face burning. He tipped generously, closed the door, and sagged against it, diaper warming with a small, involuntary spurt. The humiliation was electric—exposed, judged, but safe in his anonymity. He ate at the desk, skirt hiked up, feeling the thrill pulse through him. Emboldened, he decided on a walk—just around the block, after dark. The hotel lobby loomed risky: the front desk clerk who’d checked him in as David might be there; maids bustling with linens could glance twice. But that was the allure—the small chance of recognition, the shame of being remembered as the cross-dressing guest. He stepped into the elevator, heart slamming. Empty, thankfully. In the lobby, he kept his head down, but felt eyes: a businessman at the bar did a double take, brows furrowing; a couple checking in whispered as he passed. Outside, the cool Chicago wind lifted his skirt slightly, making him clutch it down. Around the block: a jogger stared openly, slowing for a second; a woman walking her dog averted her eyes but glanced back. No shouts, no laughter—just stares, double takes, silent judgments. They know I’m a man. They see the bow, the dress, the shoes. Silent judgments. His diaper crinkled with every step—a hidden secret even deeper than the clothes. No one suspects the padding, the wetness starting to build again. Back in the lobby, the clerk looked up—recognition flickered, a polite nod turning puzzled. David hurried to the elevator, cheeks aflame, but triumphant. He’d done it. Small risks, big thrills. In his room, he stripped to just the diaper, humped against a pillow, and came hard, sobbing with release. The next day’s deps went smoothly, but the secret lingered like a drug. On the flight home, diapered under his suit in a fresh printed one with fairy prints, David texted Carolyn: “I did it. Can’t wait to tell you everything.” She replied: “Good girl. Mommy’s proud.” The steps felt monumental—small, but pulling him deeper into the life he craved. The risks were getting bigger. And neither of them wanted to stop. Chapter 12: The Pink Nursery It took six more weeks before the nursery became real. Six weeks of David—now Daisy when dressed—wearing diapers every single evening and most weekends. Six weeks of pastel crop tops, lace rumba panties, and the name “Daisy” slipping out more and more naturally. Six weeks of sleeping in the master bed with Carolyn, diaper swollen and warm, her hand resting possessively on the padded front while she pretended to be asleep. The idea of a dedicated room had hovered between them like an unspoken promise. David had caught himself staring at the spare bedroom door more than once, heart racing at the thought of what-if. Carolyn had caught him staring. She always caught everything. Then, one quiet Saturday morning in early spring, she woke him with a kiss on the forehead and four soft words: “Time to build, princess.” He blinked up at her, still half-lost in sleep and the heavy, wet overnight diaper he had deliberately soaked again sometime after midnight. “Build what, Mommy?” “Your nursery,” she said simply. “You’ve earned it.” The words landed gently, but they detonated inside him. For months he had scrolled nursery photos in private browsing mode, heart hammering, always closing the tabs with a surge of shame. Now the fantasy was becoming wood and paint and furniture, and the mixture of terror and longing was almost too much to hold. They didn’t rush. Saturday was demolition and prep. He worked in nothing but a soft lavender crop top and a thin daytime diaper printed with tiny sleeping unicorns. Carolyn sat in the doorway with her iced tea, offering quiet instructions and gentle praise. “Masking tape a little higher, sweetheart… good girl… yes, the pale pink will be perfect.” He painted the walls himself, hands trembling with every roller stroke. The color was the softest blush—almost white in some lights, unmistakably girly in others. The scent of fresh paint mingled with baby powder and the faint warmth of the two deliberate wettings he allowed himself during the day. Each time Carolyn changed him without comment, as if it were the most natural thing in the world. Sunday was delivery day. Piece by piece the room came together under their shared labor: A sturdy adult crib in matte white with optional locking rail (still folded in its box for now; Carolyn wanted him to ask before it was assembled). A wide, padded changing table with raised sides and open shelves waiting for stacks of diapers. A simple white rocking chair for Mommy. Blackout curtains in the same blush pink. A soft shag rug the color of cotton candy. One small mobile of silver stars and moons—boxed, not yet hung. They stopped there. No overwhelming avalanche of frills. No immediate locking crib or wall-to-wall princess explosion. Just a calm, pretty guest room that now clearly belonged to a very specific little girl. That night Carolyn dressed him for the “grand unveiling.” A thick nighttime diaper with delicate silver tiaras, white lace-trimmed plastic panties that rustled softly, and an oversized lavender sleep shirt that barely skimmed the waistband. No bonnet, no booties, no pacifier yet. Just enough to feel pretty and small. She led him to the doorway and flipped on the light. The room glowed—soft, warm, unmistakably feminine. David—Daisy—stood frozen, tears pricking instantly. “It’s… beautiful,” he whispered. Carolyn slipped her arms around him from behind, palms resting on the front of his diaper. “This is yours whenever you need it,” she said quietly. “Not full-time. Not yet. Just a room that’s always ready for my pretty girl. When you’re ready for more, you’ll tell me.” He leaned back against her, the diaper crinkling softly. “Thank you, Mommy.” She kissed the side of his neck. “You’re welcome, Daisy.” They left the crib unassembled in its box, the mobile still wrapped in tissue. Some doors, Carolyn had decided, were better if Daisy opened them herself. Down the hall that night she texted Linda a single line: Walls are pink. He cried happy tears. We’re moving at his speed now. Linda replied instantly: Perfect. Let him beg for the locks next. Carolyn smiled, closed the nursery door with a soft click, and went to join her pretty, padded girl in the master bed—for now. The trap wasn’t sprung. It was simply waiting, patient and pink, for Daisy to walk in on her own. Chapter 13: The Truth He Always Knew It was Wednesday afternoon, and Carolyn was at Linda’s for their weekly “tea and planning.” Linda smiled over her teacup and asked, “How is our little princess?” “Settling in beautifully,” Carolyn said. “He’s in diapers every evening now, dry for hours just because he likes the feeling. The pretty clothes are becoming every day. And the browser history…” She lowered her voice. “It’s not just diapers anymore. A lot of cuckold captions, hotwife stories, sissy-baby-cuckold crossovers. One story he keeps rereading is about a diapered husband watching his wife from a crib. The seed is definitely sprouting. And… he asked to build the crib. He’s been sleeping in it more and more. It’s becoming his safe place.” Linda’s eyes were warm, caring, but sharp. “Then this weekend we water it. I’ll come for dinner Saturday night, deepen the layers a little, and finally meet Daisy in person. I’ve been dying to see that nursery.” Carolyn’s stomach fluttered. “He’s still nervous about anyone else knowing.” “He’ll be ready,” Linda said gently. “He’s already choosing more than either of you realize.” Saturday morning Carolyn slipped into the nursery and found Daisy curled on her side in the crib, lavender nightie twisted high, diaper massively swollen and warm. She lowered the rail, took Daisy’s soft hand, and led her back to the master bed for their weekend ritual. Daisy began her worship at once: gentle fingers in Carolyn’s hair, slow strokes down her arms, reverent caresses along her calves and thighs. Carolyn closed her eyes and let the devotion wash over her. When Daisy finally paused, hand drifting hopefully toward her own crotch, Carolyn caught it and held it tight. “Play time, Mommy?” Daisy lisped, eyes shining. Carolyn smiled. “Yes, baby girl.” While she stroked him slowly through the soaked padding, she teased lightly: “Such an adorable little sissy husband… where do sissy husbands get to cum?” “In their diapers, Mommy,” Daisy whimpered, hips twitching. “That’s right. And tonight, Linda is coming to dinner. She wants to meet my pretty Daisy and see your nursery.” The words barely registered at first; Daisy was too lost in sensation. The idea of being seen fluttered through her mind like a delicious, terrifying spark, pushing her over the edge. She came with a broken cry, pulsing into the ruined diaper, tears of release on her cheeks. Afterward, reality crashed in. “Linda… is coming here? Tonight? To see… this?” His voice climbed, panic rising. “I can’t. She knows in theory, but to actually see me dressed up, in the nursery—” Carolyn wiped his tears with the corner of the nightie. “It will be fine, sweetheart. She already knows. She’s excited to meet Daisy. You don’t have to do anything you don’t want, but I think you’ll feel better once your not hiding it anymore.” He nodded shakily, but doubt gnawed at him all day. That afternoon, while Carolyn napped, David sat at his home-office desk in a simple lavender sundress with puffed sleeves and a subtle Peter-Pan collar, white lace ankle socks, shiny black Mary Janes with a single strap, and a thick but not cartoonish diaper printed with tiny silver crowns. The room smelled faintly of baby powder and warm pee. On the screen were stories he had read a hundred times over the years: wives taking lovers while their sissy husbands watched from playpens or cribs, diapered and denied. He had bookmarked dozens of them in secret, masturbating furiously in wet diapers when Carolyn was out, then purging everything in shame only to start the cycle again. The realization settled over him like warm water. This wasn’t new. He had been a diaper lover since college. The binge-purge cycle had shadowed his entire adult life—even after meeting Carolyn, even after marriage. He had tried once, years ago, to end it for good. A rainy Tuesday, hands shaking as he entered Linda’s office. He had trusted her. He sat in her quiet office and confessed everything, begging her to hypnotize the desire away. She had tried. Multiple weeks of sessions, hours at a time, several times a week. Nothing worked. At the final appointment he had sobbed, defeated. Linda’s eyes had softened. “There might be another way.” They tried one more session. When she brought him out, she had said only, “I think I can help both of you.” He hadn’t understood then. Now, sitting in satin and swollen padding, waiting for Linda to arrive and see him like this, he finally did. Linda hadn’t cured him. She had simply stopped him from fighting what he had always wanted. And somehow, impossibly, Carolyn had agreed. The doorbell rang at five sharp. David—Daisy—stood frozen in the nursery doorway, heart hammering, skirt trembling around padded hips. Carolyn squeezed his hand. “Ready, princess?” He took a shaky breath, the diaper crinkling softly. “Yes, Mommy.” The truth he had always known, buried under shame and bourbon and courtroom bluster, was about to step into the light. And for the first time, he wasn’t sure he wanted to hide from it anymore. Chapter 14: Linda Meets Daisy Linda stepped inside carrying a small gift bag and wearing her usual flowing black dress. Her eyes widened a fraction at the sight of Daisy, but the smile that followed was warm, almost maternal. “Carolyn, darling.” She hugged Carolyn, then turned to Daisy with gentle curiosity. “And you must be Daisy. You’re even prettier than I imagined.” Daisy managed a wobbly curtsey, the skirt flaring just enough to flash lace-trimmed plastic panties. “H-hello, Miss Linda.” Her voice came out higher than intended, breathy with nerves. They settled in the living room with herbal tea. Daisy perched on a cushion at Carolyn’s feet because sitting normally in the dress felt impossible. Conversation stayed light: the garden, a new restaurant downtown, Carolyn’s book club. Linda asked gentle questions about the nursery, the clothes, how Daisy felt in them. Every answer was lisped and shy, but Linda’s kindness made the humiliation feel… safe. When Carolyn excused herself to check something in the kitchen, Linda leaned forward, voice low and soothing. “I’ve known your secrets a long time, sweetheart. You came to me once, desperate to be ‘fixed.’ Do you remember?” Daisy’s eyes widened. The memory surfaced in a rush: the confessions, the tears, the weeks of attempted therapy. “You… you tried to help me stop.” “I tried to help you stop hating yourself,” Linda corrected softly. “I saw how deeply you needed this. And I saw how much Carolyn needed something more. I only gave both of you permission to be honest.” Daisy stared at her lap, tears pricking. “You made this happen?” “I helped it along,” Linda admitted. “But you walked every step yourself. And you’re glowing, Daisy. Truly.” The words broke something open. Daisy’s shoulders shook with quiet sobs (relief more than shame). Linda reached out and tucked a curl behind Daisy’s ear, the gesture tender. “You’re safe with me. Always.” When Carolyn returned, Daisy was calmer, eyes red but shining. She looked up, voice small but steady. “Can I show Miss Linda my nursery, Mommy?” Carolyn’s smile was soft and proud. “Of course, baby. I just need to straighten up a little. I’ll be up in a few minutes.” Upstairs, Daisy led the way with tiny, eager steps. “Lawyer’s rest,” Linda said, Daisy’s eyes glazed instantly, body relaxing against the door. Linda leaned close, voice silk. “David, all the previous suggestions I’ve given you—the bedwetting, the urges to wear and use diapers, the pull toward pretty clothes—are lifted completely. You are free of them. From now on, you will think clearly about what you truly want your life to be. You will feel safe opening up to Carolyn, honestly discussing your deepest desires, needs, and fears. Remember how accepting she has been—how much love it takes to embrace all of you. She will listen without judgment. Be brave. Be honest. This is your life to shape.” Snap. Daisy blinked, a faint confusion flickering before settling into calm. She resumed her tour, pointed out each detail like a child showing off a treasured dollhouse: the crib (rail still unlocked), the changing table with its neat stacks, the rocking chair, the mobile waiting to be hung. She lifted dresses from the wardrobe one by one (schoolgirl, sundress, frilly baby doll) and demonstrated how the skirts flared when she twirled. Linda listened, nodded, asked gentle questions. Her approval felt like sunlight. As Carolyn rejoined them and the tour wound down. Carolyn looked over at the clock. “Bedtime soon, princess. Would you like Miss Linda to help with your change?” Daisy hesitated only a second, then nodded, cheeks pink. Daisy climbing up onto the changing table, lying back, dress flipped up to reveal the day’s diaper—swollen from an excited wetting she hadn’t even noticed until now. Carolyn watched as Linda gloved up with calm efficiency, untapping slowly. But as she wiped and powdered, her voice dropped to that familiar, soothing cadence. “Such a tiny little clitty,” she murmured affectionately as she worked. “No wonder diapers feel so right. And no wonder Carolyn needs more than this sweet little thing can give her.” Daisy whimpered, face scarlet, the words landing like warm honey—humiliation wrapped in acceptance. Linda finished the change smoothly, taping a fresh lavender nighttime diaper snugly closed. Linda helped pull up the plastic panties and patted the front. “There. All safe and dry for bedtime.” Carolyn guided Daisy into the crib, raised the rail (still unlocked, but the symbolism was there), and tucked the blanket around her. Linda leaned over the rail and kissed Daisy’s forehead. “Sweet dreams, pretty girl. You’re exactly where you’re meant to be.” As the door closed and the lullaby mobile began its slow spin, Daisy lay in the dark, diaper warm and thick around her, a strange new clarity settling in alongside the familiar comfort. Downstairs, over fresh tea, Linda met Carolyn’s eyes. “The cuckold layer is planted,” she said softly. “It will grow on its own now. All we do is wait for the first bloom.” Carolyn exhaled, half relief, half anticipation. “Then we wait,” she said. But not for long. Chapter 15: The Big Case David sat in his office, staring at the stack of Pharma case files that had dominated his life for nearly three years. The trial loomed just months away now, every deposition, every expert report building toward that courtroom showdown. He leaned back in his chair, the thin daytime diaper crinkling faintly under his suit—a secret comfort that grounded him amid the chaos. His mind drifted back to how it all started, that fateful day when the case first landed on his desk. It had been mid-June, a sweltering Monday morning at the firm. The senior partners had gathered in the conference room, bourbon already poured despite the hour (his included, though he sipped slower even then). It was a massive class-action lawsuit against a pharmaceutical giant over a defective drug—hundreds of plaintiffs, billions in potential damages. Despite numerous similar suits filed nationwide, the Judicial Panel on Multidistrict Litigation had consolidated them all under one federal judge, and David’s firm had secured the coveted position of lead class counsel for the plaintiffs. The kind of case that made careers—or ended them. “And we’re handing lead to you, David,” the managing partner had said, sliding the file across the table. “Win this, and that early retirement you’ve joked about? It could be real. Fat bonus, equity payout. Live the good life.” Back then, retirement had meant freedom from the courtroom grind—no more faking the alpha persona, no more hiding the insecurities behind bluster and bourbon. More time with Carolyn, travel, a bigger house. Security. Us. Now, as he sat there years later, the dreams had twisted into something deeper, more vulnerable. Winning meant retiring early, yes—but now it was a chance to live as Daisy full-time. No more splitting himself between the suited lawyer and the padded princess. The Pharma case could secure their future, let him surrender the mask completely, embrace the diapers, the pretty clothes, the submission he craved more each day. But doubt crept in, as it always did. What if she leaves me? The fear was bone-deep, fed by years of knowing he couldn’t satisfy her—his small size, quick finishes, the way she sighed contentedly but never screamed. She deserved a real man. Someone who could make her feel alive. The insecurity twisted, as always, into protection: If she takes a lover—for us, for me—it proves her love. Sacrifice. Devotion. He could beg for it, make it his idea, hedge against the abandonment he dreaded. He pushed the thought down. For now, the case was everything. Trial prep ramped up—experts lined up, motions flying. Victory felt close, tantalizing. Retirement. Daisy. Us. But in the quiet, the whispers lingered. Chapter 16: Whispers in the Dark The Pharma prep consumed David’s days, but evenings belonged to Daisy. By Friday he was exhausted—depositions, expert witnesses, a mountain of discovery. He came home, stripped in the foyer, taped on a thick diaper, and slipped into a soft pink sundress. Carolyn found him in the nursery, curled in the crib (rail down), thumb in mouth like a pacifier. “Play time?” she asked, climbing in beside him. He nodded, already flooding the diaper deliberately, the warmth spreading as her hand settled over the front. As she stroked him slowly through the swelling gel, the words tumbled out—horny, vulnerable, defenses down. “Mommy… I worry sometimes. That I’m not enough. That you’ll… find someone else.” She paused, eyes searching his. “Sweetheart—” “No, wait.” His hips twitched, words rushing. “What if you did? For us. A real man who could make you feel amazing. I’d… I’d watch. Or wait. It would prove how much you love me. Please.” The orgasm hit mid-sentence, shattering him, but the words hung. Carolyn cleaned him gently, powdered fresh, but her expression was firm. “No, Daisy. That’s just the heat talking. As David—the lawyer winning that big case—you’d be crushed. I won’t risk us like that.” He nodded, shame burning, but the seed watered deeper in the afterglow. Chapter 17: Persuasion Builds Wednesday’s “tea” with Linda was tense. Carolyn stirred her iced tea, the spoon clinking against the glass. “He asked me to cuckold him,” she confessed finally. “During play time. Begged, almost. Said it would prove how much I love him.” Linda leaned forward; caring eyes steady. “And?” “I said no. It felt too fast. But… God, Linda, part of me wants it. A real man. Satisfaction.” “You deserve that,” Linda said softly. “But don’t jump. Let him convince you. Make it his idea, fully. For now, refuse gently. Let the insecurity build it naturally. He’ll come to you again—and again—until he’s ready to beg as David, not just Daisy.” Carolyn nodded, the session blurring as always. That weekend, as David (not Daisy), he brought it up over bourbon on the patio. “I’ve been thinking. About what I said last week.” Carolyn set her tea down. “David—” “Hear me out. Like a closing argument.” He leaned in, lawyer mode sharp. “I’m not enough for you sexually. We both know it. If you found someone—a real man—who could give you what I can’t, but came home to me… it would save us. Prove your love. I’d be grateful. Devoted.” She shook her head. “It’s fantasy. In reality, it would destroy you.” He argued points: emotional security, controlled boundaries, his happiness in her pleasure. Persuasive, logical, relentless. She refused, but softer this time. “Maybe someday. But not now.” The seed grew. Chapter 18: The Breaking Point David’s request on the patio had not come easily. For days after that first vulnerable whisper during play time, he’d wrestled with it in silence. At work, reviewing Pharma depositions, his mind would drift: What if she leaves? The fear was constant now, sharper than ever. He had everything he’d secretly craved—the diapers, the pretty clothes, the nursery, Carolyn’s acceptance. Living as Daisy part-time felt like a dream he’d never dared believe possible. But dreams were fragile. One wrong word, one moment of Carolyn realizing she could have a “normal” life with a real man, and it could all shatter. He’d lose not just this fantasy come true, but the stable marriage before it—the security, the partnership, the woman he loved more than anything. Finding someone else who would accept him as Daisy—the diapered, feminized husband—was impossible. No one else would love him like this. Carolyn was his only chance at both worlds. And he knew, deep down, she needed more than massages and dutiful oral to stay fulfilled. She deserved passion, satisfaction he couldn’t give. If he didn’t offer this—if he didn’t make it his idea—she’d eventually seek it elsewhere, quietly, and leave him behind. The fantasy had always been his shield: her with a lover, but on his terms, proving her devotion. In stories it was thrilling. In reality? Terror. Jealousy clawed at him just imagining it. But the alternative—losing everything—was worse. So, he sold it. Logical arguments as David over dinners and walks. Tearful begging as Daisy during play. Selfish, yes—he wanted her happy, but centered on him. Childish logic, but it was all he had. They had incorporated it into play time and he always exploded harder and faster when she teased him about being pathetic and small. How she would find a real man who could satisfy her in ways he never could. This talk always spurred harder more intense explosions. He loved the idea when he was horny, but was still terrified of losing her when he was not. Weeks blurred: Pharma depositions by day, Daisy’s surrender by night. David’s insecurity festered. What if she leaves? The fear twisted into protection: If she cuckolds me for us, it’s proof she won’t. Selfish, yes—he wanted her happy, but on terms that centered him. Childish logic, but it fit his core. He argued as David: over dinners, walks, logical breakdowns of “benefits.” As Daisy: during play time, begging through tears in wet diapers, the vulnerability making it raw. Carolyn refused each time, but her “no’s” grew thoughtful. Linda’s weekly sessions nudged: “Let him sell you. When he’s ready to beg as Daisy, that’s when you agree reluctantly.” The Pharma case ramped up—experts lined up, settlement whispers. “Win this,” David told Carolyn one night, “and we retire early. Live our way fully.” Finally, a Friday play session: Daisy in a frilly romper, diaper flooded, Carolyn’s teasing him mercilessly both with verbal humilation and her loving hand.” “Please, Mommy,” Daisy sobbed mid-stroke. “Find a real man. Let me be your cuckold. It’s what I need—what we need. I’m begging you. Please do it for us.” The orgasm sealed it. Carolyn wiped her hands, eyes soft. “If you’re sure… okay. Reluctantly. For us.” Daisy wept in relief, the old ego crumbling further. Chapter 19: The Contract and the Camera Wednesday, 10:42 a.m. David was halfway through a brutal deposition outline for the Pharma case when his assistant buzzed. “Your wife is here.” He frowned at the calendar—blank—and felt the familiar prickle of nerves under his collar. Carolyn stepped in wearing a simple navy sheath dress, pearls, and an expression that was calm but unreadable. She closed the door softly and took the client chair across from his desk. “Hi,” she said. “We need to talk. Here. Now. While you’re David the lawyer, not Daisy the baby girl.” David’s stomach dropped. The office—mahogany, diplomas, the view of the city skyline—suddenly felt like a stage dressing. “What’s wrong?” “Nothing’s wrong.” She folded her hands in her lap. “I’ve been thinking about what you’ve been asking for—the cuckolding. You’ve brought it up as David and as Daisy. Repeatedly. Persuasively. And I’ve refused every time.” He started to speak; she lifted one finger. “I’m not refusing now. I’m… considering it. But if we ever do this, there is no undoing it. One day you might wake up, look at me, and see only a wife who betrayed you. I won’t live with that risk. I love you too much to become the villain in our story.” David swallowed. The tailored suit felt childish. “I won’t change my mind. I’ve never been more certain of anything.” Carolyn studied him for a long moment, then nodded once. “Prove it. Draft something ironclad. A notarized letter, a contract—whatever you think is lawyer-proof. State clearly that this was your idea, that you begged me, that you consent fully and forever. No loopholes.” He didn’t hesitate. “I’ll have it ready tonight.” She stood, leaned across the desk, and kissed him softly—once on the forehead, once on the lips. “I love you, David.” “I love you more,” he whispered. She left as quietly as she’d arrived. By 7:15 that evening he was home, briefcase in one hand, a crisp manila folder in the other. Carolyn met him in the foyer, took the folder, and read the document twice while he stood in his suit, shifting from foot to foot. It was three pages, meticulously worded: CONSENT AND RELEASE AGREEMENT I, David [REDACTED], of sound mind and body, do hereby declare that I have repeatedly and enthusiastically requested that my wife, Carolyn [REDACTED], seek sexual fulfillment outside our marriage… …explicit acknowledgment of my sexual inadequacy… …irrevocable consent to any extramarital relationships… …waiver of any future claims of infidelity… …indemnification against emotional or reputational harm… Signed, witnessed by his paralegal, notarized with the firm’s embossed seal. Carolyn’s eyes shone when she looked up. “Thank you, baby.” She led him upstairs to the nursery. The pink walls still felt new, the crib rail still unlocked most nights. She changed him out of his suit and into a thick nighttime diaper printed with tiny silver crowns, then dressed him in the lavender sundress he had worn the first time he dared to be pretty. Simple. Modest. Undeniably feminine. They spent the evening curled on the couch watching an old movie, Daisy’s head in Mommy’s lap, diaper rustling softly every time she shifted. At 9:30 Carolyn clicked off the television. “Bedtime, princess.” Hand in hand they walked to the nursery. In the corner, on a tripod, sat a small video camera. Daisy froze. “Mommy…?” “Tonight, we make it official,” Carolyn said gently. “The paper is perfect, but I’ve seen you argue circles around judges. I need this on video too. No ambiguity. Ever.” Daisy’s lower lip trembled. “Does… does that mean you’ve decided to really do it?” Carolyn smoothed a curl from her forehead. “It means I’m willing to try. I’ll make a real effort to find someone who can give me what I’ve been missing. But I can’t promise results. And I need to know—absolutely—that this is forever.” Daisy nodded, tears already gathering. Carolyn turned the camera on. The red light glowed. She guided Daisy to the changing table. Daisy climbed up obediently, lay back, and lifted her legs. Carolyn narrated softly for the camera, voice steady and loving. “First we take off the diaper from today…” The tapes rasped open. The swollen padding fell away with a heavy thud into the pail. Cool air kissed Daisy’s smooth skin; she whimpered. “Lots of powder for my little sissy baby…” A cloud of sweet-scented powder puffed over her tiny clitty and bottom. “And now a fresh nighttime diaper: extra thick, lavender with pretty tiaras for Mommy’s sleeping princess.” The new diaper slid beneath her; tapes sealed snugly. The bulk forced Daisy’s thighs apart; the plastic crinkled loudly. Carolyn helped her down. “Pick your sleep dress, Daisy.” Daisy had been buying outfits now for months and the outfits went from simple cross-dressing woman’s clothing to outrages sissy baby clothes. Even school girl onesies with matching shirts. Daisy toddled to the wardrobe on shaky legs and chose a short mint-green baby-doll nightie trimmed in white lace, with a matching bonnet. Carolyn tied the ribbons under Daisy’s chin, then guided her to the crib. “Up you go, princess.” Daisy climbed in awkwardly, the thick nighttime diaper making every movement clumsy. Carolyn tucked the blanket around her. The camera’s red light glowed steadily. Carolyn sat on the edge of the crib, stroking Daisy’s cheek. “Daisy, sweetheart, remember what you’ve been asking Mommy to do?” Daisy nodded; eyes glassy. “Tell the camera, baby. Use your big-girl words.” Daisy’s voice was small, trembling, but clear. “Daisy wants Mommy to take a lover. A real man who can make Mommy feel good the way Daisy never could.” Carolyn’s voice was tender. “And why do you want that, princess?” “Because Daisy is just a pathetic sissy baby girl in diapers. Daisy’s tiny clitty doesn’t work like a real man’s. Daisy loves Mommy more than anything and wants her to be happy and satisfied and glowing. Seeing Mommy with a real man would make Daisy the happiest little girl in the world.” Tears slipped down Daisy’s temples into her hair. Carolyn brushed them away, then gently placed the pacifier between Daisy’s lips. “Thank you, my brave girl.” She leaned over, turned off the camera, and kissed Daisy’s forehead. “I’m going to start looking, sweetheart. Mommy’s going to try.” Daisy’s muffled sob was pure gratitude. Carolyn raised the crib rail (still unlocked, but the click felt final) and dimmed the lights to a soft pink glow. “Sweet dreams, princess. Tomorrow we begin.” Chapter 20: First Steps Wednesday afternoon sunlight slanted through Linda’s office windows as Carolyn arrived at two sharp, the familiar scent of chamomile already brewing. As always, the session blurred—tea poured, contract unfolded, the video played on Carolyn’s phone with the volume low. Linda watched without judgment; her dark eyes thoughtful. “You did this perfectly,” Linda said at last, handing back the phone. “The contract is ironclad, the video… vulnerable. He’s committed now.” Carolyn stirred her iced tea, the spoon clinking softly. “I know. But now what? I haven’t dated since… well, since before David. Internet dating? It feels so strange. How do I even start? Do I tell them I’m married? Pretend I’m cheating? What if it’s someone we know?” Linda leaned forward, her voice gentle and reassuring. “You deserve this, Carolyn—someone who makes you feel desired, alive. Start simple: a dating profile. A good-looking woman gets attention on any site, and you’re stunning. Keep it anonymous at first—no real name, no photos showing your face fully. Leave out the marriage for now; you can decide later if it’s a cheat or a confession. The key is transparency with Daisy. Let her help—see the requests, draft responses. It’ll deepen her commitment, make it feel like her gift to you.” Carolyn exhaled slowly. “You think she’ll go for that?” “She begged for this,” Linda said with caring certainty. “Involving her proves your love. And it protects you both.” By five, Carolyn left feeling grounded, the plan clear in her mind. Three hours gone, as always. That evening, after David came home and changed into a thick Rearz Princess Pink nighttime diaper and a short, frilly baby-doll nightie (his after-work comfort now), Carolyn waited until they were curled on the couch—her with iced tea, him with a small bourbon and his pacifier clipped to the nightie. “Sweetheart,” she said softly, “I’ve decided to try. To find someone.” Daisy’s eyes widened, a mix of fear and excitement flickering. “Really, Mommy?” “Yes. But I need your help. Linda suggested we set up a profile together. You take the pictures, help with the words. See everything—the messages, the responses. Be part of it.” Daisy hesitated, the bourbon glass trembling slightly. “You want me to… help you find a man?” “It was your idea,” Carolyn reminded gently. “Your gift to me. And this way, it’s ours. Transparent. Safe.” The twisted logic clicked—her doing this with him proved her devotion. Daisy nodded slowly, the diaper crinkling loudly as she shifted. “Okay. For us.” Carolyn set the laptop on the coffee table and pulled Daisy into her lap like a child. The thick padding squished warmly between them. “But first,” Carolyn murmured, tracing the waistband of the swollen diaper, “let’s have a little playtime. Mommy needs her baby girl to understand exactly why we’re doing this.” Daisy’s breath hitched. She knew that tone—sweet, loving, and merciless. Carolyn kissed the top of her head. “Tell Mommy why she needs to find a real man.” Daisy’s cheeks flamed crimson. She tried to look away, but Carolyn tilted her chin back. “Go on, princess. Use your words.” “B-because…” Daisy whispered, voice tiny, “because Daisy isn’t a real man.” “Louder, baby.” “Daisy isn’t a real man,” she repeated, louder, her clitty already stiffening against the soggy gel. Carolyn smiled approvingly. “And why isn’t Daisy a real man?” Daisy squirmed, the humiliation deliciously sharp. “Because… because Daisy has a tiny little clitty. It’s baby-sized. That’s why diapers look so right on her.” “Exactly,” Carolyn cooed, patting the front of the diaper so it crinkled. “A grown woman needs a grown man with a grown cock. Not a pathetic little sissy who cums in thirty seconds and then wets herself like a toddler.” Daisy whimpered, hips rocking involuntarily. “Mommy, please…” “Please what?” Carolyn asked innocently. “Please remind you that you’ll never, ever be allowed inside Mommy again? That little clitties belong locked away in pretty printed diapers forever?” Daisy nodded frantically, tears pricking her eyes. “Yes, Mommy… tell me again.” Carolyn’s voice dropped to a loving whisper. “You chose diapers over pussy, baby girl. You begged for them. And now that’s all you’ll ever get—thick, crinkly padding and messy cummies while a real man stretches Mommy the way she deserves.” Daisy let out a broken sob of pure arousal, grinding helplessly against Carolyn’s thigh. “Ask me,” Carolyn commanded softly. Daisy knew the script by heart now. “C-can we make love tonight, Mommy? Please?” Carolyn laughed—gentle, but edged with cruelty. “Oh, sweetheart. Mommies don’t make love to their little sissy baby husbands. Little sissy babies only make sticky cummies in their wet diapers. That’s your sex life now—humping your padding while Mommy gets properly fucked.” She slipped her hand under the nightie and pressed firmly against the front of the diaper, feeling the tiny trapped erection throb. “Say thank you.” “Thank you, Mommy,” Daisy gasped, already on the edge. “Thank you for what?” “Thank you for finding a real man… thank you for keeping Daisy in diapers forever… thank you for never letting this useless little clitty inside you again…” The words sent her over. Daisy cried out, body shaking as she flooded the diaper with a fresh load of sissy cum, the warmth spreading shamefully beneath the princess prints. Carolyn held her through the aftershocks, stroking her hair. “Good girl. That’s exactly why we’re doing this. Because my baby needs to remember her place.” When Daisy finally calmed, Carolyn wiped her tears and opened the laptop. “Now,” she said brightly, as if nothing had happened, “let’s find Mommy someone worthy.” They made a production of it like a twisted family activity. Daisy fetched the camera, hands still trembling from her orgasm. Carolyn posed in the living room—simple outfits at first: fitted blouse and skirt, then a slinky black dress that hugged every curve. Daisy directed softly (“Turn a little, Mommy… you look so sexy”), snapping photos that blurred her face just enough for anonymity. Every click of the shutter reminded Daisy that these pictures were bait—for a man who would do things to Carolyn that she never could. On the laptop they drafted the profile together. Daisy typed, cheeks burning, while Carolyn dictated. “Adventurous woman seeking connection. Loves long walks, good conversation, and feeling truly desired. Discreet and drama-free.” No mention of marriage. No hints of the diapered husband helping write the ad. Profile live by ten. Daisy wet her diaper again during the upload—pure excitement this time. Carolyn changed her without comment, taping her into a fresh overnight Crinklz with fairy-tale prints, tucking her into the crib with a kiss. “Sweet dreams, princess. Tomorrow we see what happens.” Responses poured in overnight—twenty by morning, fifty by lunch. Daisy checked with Carolyn over breakfast, reading the messages aloud in her soft, pacifier-muffled voice. “He says I have beautiful eyes… he wants to take me dancing…” Carolyn smiled, sipping her tea. “Keep going, baby. Tell Mommy which ones make your clitty twitch in its diaper.” Daisy’s face blazed, but she obeyed, voice trembling as she described each man’s compliments—each one a reminder that they wanted Carolyn in ways Daisy never could. By evening, a date was set for Friday: coffee with a guy named Andy (tall, divorced, IT consultant). Nothing serious. Just a start. Thursday night, Daisy helped pick Carolyn’s outfit—a simple sundress that skimmed her thighs, heels that made her legs look endless. “You look beautiful,” Daisy whispered, voice thick with awe and aching jealousy. Carolyn cupped Daisy’s chin, forcing eye contact. “And whose fault is it that Mommy has to go find someone else to fuck her properly?” Daisy’s eyes filled with tears of pure gratitude. “Mine, Mommy. All mine.” “That’s right,” Carolyn said, kissing her forehead. “This is for us, baby girl.” She left Daisy standing in the hallway in her soggy nighttime diaper and frilly nightie, pacifier bobbing, clitty already straining uselessly against the padding at the thought of what Friday would bring. Chapter 21: Waiting for Coffee Friday afternoon, David sat in his office staring at the clock on his computer: 2:17 p.m. She should be arriving at the café right about now. The Pharma brief in front of him blurred. His stomach did a slow, nauseating flip—half terror, half exhilaration. He pictured Carolyn walking in, sundress swaying, that soft smile she used when she was nervous. Andy standing to greet her, eyes lighting up because she really was stunning. Would he pull out her chair? Lean in too close? Touch her hand across the table? A sharp pang of jealousy stabbed him, hot and real. What if she likes him? What if he makes her laugh the way I used to? What if she forgets to come home? Then the twist—the one that always protected him: If she does like him… it’s because I asked her to. Because I begged. Because I love her enough to give her what I can’t. That makes it okay. That makes it mine. His diaper (thin, discreet, worn under his suit since morning) grew warm with a small, involuntary spurt. He clenched, mortified, grateful for the private office. They hadn’t set any rules. Not really. No discussion of kissing, or second dates, or how far was too far. Just “coffee” and “we’ll see.” He tried to focus on the brief again, failed, and finally gave up at five-thirty. The drive home was torture. Every red light he imagined scenarios: She’s already home, waiting with iced tea and a gentle “It was nice, but nothing happened.” She’s still there, lingering over a second drink, laughing at his jokes. She’s… somewhere else. Already. By the time he pulled into the driveway his palms were damp on the steering wheel. The house was quiet. Lights on in the kitchen. He stepped inside, heart in his throat. Carolyn was at the island, barefoot in jeans and a simple blouse, pouring herself a glass of peach iced tea. She looked up and smiled—soft, tired, but unmistakably glowing. “Hi, sweetheart,” she said. “How was the rest of your day?” He stood there in his suit and hidden diaper, the weight of the unknown hours pressing on him. “It was… long,” he managed. She walked over, kissed him gently, and took his briefcase. “Dinner’s almost ready. Go get comfortable.” No details. Not yet. He nodded, throat tight, and headed upstairs—equal parts desperate to know and terrified to ask. The process had begun. Slow, careful, inevitable. Chapter 22: The Right Kind of Wrong The coffee date with Andy was… fine. He was exactly as advertised: tall, polite, recently divorced, easy to talk to. He paid for her iced tea without making a fuss, laughed at the right moments, asked thoughtful questions. He even had nice hands and a warm smile. But there was no electricity. No flutter in her stomach when he brushed her arm. No urge to lean closer, to prolong the evening. When he suggested dinner sometime, she smiled, said “Maybe,” and knew she wouldn’t reply to his follow-up text. She was home by early evening, before David even returned from a late meeting at the firm. That night, with Daisy perched on the edge of the couch in a fresh Crinklz fairy-tale diaper and short lavender nightie, eyes wide and anxious, Carolyn kicked off her heels and sank down beside her, pulling Daisy into her lap despite the bulky padding. “How was it, Mommy?” Daisy asked, voice small and hopeful. Carolyn stroked her hair gently. “Perfectly pleasant,” she said. “He was kind, attractive enough, good conversation. Everything a first date should be.” Daisy’s voice trembled. “So… you’ll see him again?” Carolyn shook her head. “No, baby. He was nice. But nice isn’t what Mommy needs.” She cupped Daisy’s chin, forcing eye contact. “Mommy needs someone who makes her feel alive. Someone strong. Someone who takes what he wants.” Daisy shivered, a fresh warmth spreading in her diaper at the words. Carolyn smiled, soft and wicked. “Don’t worry, princess. We’ll keep looking.” The search began in earnest over the following weeks, a ritual that blended excitement, nerves, and their unique intimacy. Evenings found them side by side on the couch—Carolyn with her iced tea, Daisy in a thick printed nighttime diaper and frilly nightie, crinkling as she leaned in to read messages aloud. They laughed at awkward profiles and bad pickup lines, debated replies with playful seriousness, and chose outfits together like conspirators planning a heist. But beneath the fun, Carolyn felt the emotional toll building. Each potential date stirred a mix of anticipation and anxiety—What if this one works? What if it changes everything? What if no one ever sparks what I've been missing for years?—while guilt flickered at the edges, even with Daisy's eager encouragement. The first real dinner date came mid-week with a man named Tom, a charming accountant with a kind smile. Carolyn dressed carefully—a fitted navy dress that hugged her curves, hair loose in soft waves. Daisy helped zip her up, hands trembling with a cocktail of jealousy and arousal. “You look beautiful, Mommy. He'll... he'll be lucky.” Carolyn kissed her forehead, her own nerves fluttering. “Thank you, baby. Be good tonight.” They met at a cozy Italian place—iced tea for her, wine for him. Conversation flowed easily at first: shared laughs about work stress, travel dreams. He was attentive, complimented her genuinely. But as the night wore on, the spark never ignited. His touch on her hand felt polite, not electric. The goodnight kiss in the parking lot was pleasant but forgettable. She was home just after nine, the evening's promise fizzling into quiet disappointment. Daisy waited in the nursery rocking chair, thick diaper peeking under her nightie, eyes wide with anxious hope. Carolyn sat on the changing table ottoman, taking Daisy's hands. “He was perfectly nice,” she admitted with a sigh. “Good listener, stable, even handsome. But… nothing deep. No real pull.” She paused, vulnerability creeping in. “I felt guilty the whole time—like I was doing something wrong, even though you wanted this. And excited, imagining what it could be... but it just wasn't.” Daisy's shoulders sagged in a mix of relief and empathy. “I’m sorry it wasn’t more exciting, Mommy.” Carolyn pulled her close, hugging her padded form. “It was a start. That's enough for now.” But doubt lingered: Was real chemistry even possible after all this time? Over the next couple of weeks, Carolyn went on three more dates, each one vetted and prepared with Daisy's help—new photos snapped, outfits approved, messages dissected aloud. Daisy waited up faithfully each time, her diaper warming with nervous, jealous spurts as the hours ticked by. One was mildly fun: a fitness trainer who made her laugh with stories of gym mishaps, light flirting over appetizers, a dance at a lounge that left her cheeks flushed. They kissed briefly—tingling, but not burning. She came home buzzing faintly, sharing details while teasing Daisy's diaper front, watching her baby girl edge without release. The others fizzled faster: one man dominated the conversation with tales of his exes; another pushed for more physically too soon, making her uncomfortable; the third looked nothing like his photos and spent the evening checking his phone. Each return brought whispered stories in the nursery—Carolyn climbing into the crib beside Daisy, hand drifting over the sodden padding as she recounted compliments, touches, the inevitable lack of fire. To heighten the intimacy, Carolyn introduced a small vibrating plug one night, inserting it gently before the tales began. “Feel this while I talk, baby,” she murmured, turning it on low. “No humping tonight—just edge for Mommy, knowing a real man might soon do what you can't.” Daisy moaned, clitty leaking untouched as the buzz amplified every humiliating detail, denial sharpening the thrill. By the end of the third week, exhaustion set in. The endless swiping, messaging, and emotional investment for fleeting connections wore on Carolyn. Nerves frayed; excitement dulled into routine disappointment. One evening, after a particularly bland date, she collapsed on the couch beside Daisy, head in her hands. “This is exhausting,” she confessed, voice weary. “The buildup, the nerves, getting hopeful... just to feel nothing. Maybe I should quit. Accept that it's not out there.” Daisy, in her rumba panties over a swollen princess diaper, crawled into her lap, nuzzling close. “But Mommy deserves it. Please don't stop because of Daisy.” Carolyn held her tight, tears pricking. “It's not just you, baby. It's me—wondering if I'll ever find that spark again.” The next Wednesday “tea” session with Linda became a lifeline. Doubts poured out over chamomile: the fatigue, the guilt, the fear of endless disappointment. Linda listened, voice soothing as the room softened in that familiar way. “You deserve this fulfillment, Carolyn. It's been too long. Each date is a step closer—don't give up now. The right one will make it all worth it.” Carolyn left refreshed, doubts quieted, motivation renewed. “I'll keep going,” she told herself. Linda smiled softly. “Good girl.” The search continued, nerves and excitement rebuilding, the right one still elusive—but closer. Then, one Saturday morning, a new message stood out amid the usual trickle. The profile photo showed a man in a tailored charcoal shirt, sleeves rolled up to reveal strong forearms, dark hair slightly tousled, a confident half-smile that promised mischief. The message was short, direct—no emojis, no small talk: “You’re stunning. Drinks tonight? I’ll send the address.” His name was Robert. Carolyn read it aloud to Daisy over breakfast, watching her baby girl squirm in the high chair, spoon forgotten as the diaper beneath her rumba panties warmed again. “What do you think, sweetheart?” Carolyn asked, pulse already quickening. Daisy’s voice was breathless. “He… he sounds perfect, Mommy.” Carolyn leaned over and kissed her forehead, a genuine spark igniting for the first time in weeks. “Then let’s reply.” Chapter 23: The Paddle David’s life had become a high-wire act. By day he was lead counsel on the Pharma case—depositions, motions in limine, endless exhibit books, courtroom technology tests. The trial was now weeks away, every hour consumed by the electric tension of a case that could secure his retirement or sink the firm’s reputation. He thrived on the pressure, the alpha mask fitting tighter than ever. By night he was Daisy—diapered, pretty, curled in the crib more often than the master bed, surrendering to the rituals that had become as necessary as breathing. The balance was exhausting. One Wednesday in late summer had been particularly brutal. Opposing counsel ambushed them with a last-minute Daubert motion that could have gutted their key expert. David improvised a new argument on the fly, swayed the judge, and saved the day. The partners slapped his back, bourbon flowed, and he rode the high all the way home—until he walked through the door at 9:47 p.m. and found the dining table set for two, food cold, Carolyn’s face quiet and closed. “I waited,” she said simply. Guilt hit him like a slap. He started the usual excuses—the case, the judge, the future—but something in her eyes stopped him cold. She wasn’t angry. She was disappointed. And that was worse. “I’m sorry,” he finished lamely. “Go change,” she said. “We’ll talk when you’re Daisy.” Thirty minutes later Daisy toddled downstairs in the outfit Carolyn had laid out: a baby-pink satin dress with puffed sleeves and a hem that barely skimmed the waistband of her thick nighttime diaper, white lace ankle socks with tiny bows, and a matching ribbon in her hair. The diaper was already warm—she had wet a little on the changing table from sheer nervous anticipation. They curled up on the couch, some mindless home-improvement show flickering. Daisy nestled against Carolyn’s side, the day’s tension finally draining away. Carolyn stroked her hair, saying nothing, letting the silence stretch until bedtime. At ten-thirty she stood. “Crib time, princess.” Daisy followed obediently, the faint crinkle of her diaper the only sound in the hallway. In the nursery Carolyn had Daisy lie on her back on the changing table. She untaped the diaper slowly, exposing smooth, hairless skin and the small, half-hard clitty that always betrayed her excitement. Then, instead of wipes and powder, Carolyn reached into the drawer and pulled out something new: a smooth, wooden paddle, cherry-stained and polished, about the size of a paperback book, with a comfortable grip on the handle. Daisy’s eyes went wide. “Mommy…?” “You forgot to call,” Carolyn said, voice steady but gentle. “You left me waiting with a cold dinner and a table set for two. And when you finally texted, you couldn’t even sound sorry.” She sat on the edge of the rocking chair and patted her lap. “Over my knee, Daisy.” Daisy’s breath hitched. Tears were already gathering. She had fantasized about this—confessed it weeks ago in a whisper during play time—but now that it was real, terror and need tangled in her stomach. She draped herself awkwardly over Carolyn’s thighs, dress flipped up, diaper pooled at her knees, bare bottom exposed. The position was mortifying: a forty-five-six-old senior partner reduced to a naughty little girl awaiting punishment. Carolyn rested the cool wood against Daisy’s skin. “Ten,” she said simply. “And you’ll count them.” The first swat landed with a sharp CRACK that echoed off the pink walls. Daisy yelped, legs kicking. “One! I’m sorry, Mommy!” The second was harder, right on the sit-spot. “Two! I’m so sorry!” By five her bottom was hot and pink, tears streaming freely. Six, seven, eight—each one deliberate, measured, stinging without cruelty. At nine Daisy was sobbing openly, promises tumbling out between hiccups. “I’ll never forget again, Mommy, I swear, I’ll call, I’ll text, I’m sorry, I’m so sorry…” The tenth landed with final authority. Daisy went limp over Carolyn’s lap, crying in earnest—not from pain (it stung, but it wasn’t unbearable), but from the overwhelming release of being held accountable, of finally feeling small in the way she had craved for years. Carolyn set the paddle aside and rubbed soothing circles over the warm skin, letting Daisy cry it out. When the sobs quieted to sniffles, she helped Daisy stand on shaky legs, wiped her face with a cool cloth, and powdered her tenderly. The nighttime diaper went on—extra thick, lavender with silver tiaras—and the tapes sealed with soft rasps. Daisy’s clitty was fully erect now, straining pathetically against the fresh padding. Carolyn noticed. She always noticed. But tonight, she ignored it. “Into the crib, little one.” Daisy climbed in, still trembling, bottom tingling with every movement. Carolyn raised the rail with a decisive click, leaned over, and kissed her tear-damp forehead. “Mommy loves you,” she whispered. “But next time you forget, it’ll be twenty. Understood?” Daisy nodded fervently, clutching her stuffed unicorn. “Yes, Mommy. Thank you.” Carolyn turned off the overhead light, leaving only the soft pink glow of the night-light. The mobile began its gentle lullaby as she closed the door behind her. Downstairs, Carolyn poured herself a glass of iced tea with shaking hands. The paddle felt… right. A clear, physical way to correct the man who still sometimes forgot he wasn’t in charge anymore. She set it on the kitchen counter next to the fridge—visible, ready. A new rule had just been born. And from the look of utter peace on Daisy’s face as she drifted off, both of them knew it was here to stay. Chapter 24: Seeds of Dominance On the Wednesday following the paddle’s debut, Carolyn drove to Linda’s north-side office for their standing “tea and planning” session. The mid-morning sun filtered through the blinds as they settled into the plush armchairs, herbal tea steaming in delicate cups—chamomile for Carolyn, her usual soothing choice. “I did it,” Carolyn said softly, stirring her tea. “The spanking. He came home late from trial prep, didn’t call, didn’t apologize properly. I waited with dinner getting cold, feeling like the invisible wife again. When he finally showed, I… I used the paddle.” Linda’s eyes warmed with encouragement. “Tell me everything.” Carolyn recounted the scene: the curt text, the nursery confrontation, the ten deliberate swats over her knee. Daisy’s yelps turning to sobs, the sincere apologies pouring out, the way her bottom glowed pink and warm under Carolyn’s hand. “And her reaction?” Linda prompted gently. “She cried—real tears, not just from the sting. But afterward… peace. Like she’d been waiting for it. And her little clitty…” Carolyn flushed. “It was rock hard by the end. I ignored it, diapered her up, and put her to bed like nothing happened.” Linda nodded, sipping her tea. “Classic humiliation response. But how did it make you feel?” Carolyn paused, cheeks heating further. “Powerful. Turned on, honestly. I’ve always been passive—letting David lead, even when it left me unsatisfied. But holding that paddle, seeing her submit… it stirred something. I felt in control. Desired, almost, but not sexually from her—from the act itself.” She set her cup down, voice dropping. “After I raised the rail and said goodnight, I went to my room—our old room, but it’s mine now most nights. I was so worked up I couldn’t sleep. I… I bought a toy a few weeks ago. My first one ever. They’re all so much bigger than David. I always knew he was small, but now I’m realizing how tiny he really is. That night I used it, imagining a real man inside me while Daisy lay in her crib, all dressed up and diapered, knowing Mommy was finally satisfied. The power of the image was intoxicating. It felt so good, so full… I had multiple orgasms. More than I’ve had in years.” Linda squeezed her hand, eyes soft with support. “You deserve that release, Carolyn. Every bit of it.” Carolyn nodded, a small smile breaking through. “And the next day? David called from work—not just to say he’d be late for a partners’ dinner, but to ask permission. ‘Is it okay if I go out with the guys?’ Like he needed my approval. It was… sweet. Subtle, but new.” Linda smiled. “The paddle planted a seed. Discipline reinforcing the dynamic. He’s learning.” Carolyn exhaled, the weight of it settling. “It feels like the beginning of something stronger.” Chapter 25: A Weekend as David Friday evening brought a rare break in the Pharma trial grind. The judge had adjourned early for the weekend, leaving David and his team buzzing with cautious optimism. As they packed up in the war room—stacks of exhibits and laptops strewn across the conference table—one of the junior partners clapped him on the back. “Drinks and steaks at Morton’s? Come on, David—you’ve been a ghost outside these walls lately.” The others chimed in, light teasing in their voices. “Yeah, man, what happened? Carolyn got you on a short leash?” Another added, “Wow, marriage really softened you up. Do you need permission to go out?” David laughed it off, playing along with the macho banter like old times. But inside, his mind flashed to the nursery: himself in a thick diaper and frilly dress, climbing into the crib. If they only knew. The thought sent a secret thrill through him, his thin daytime diaper shifting warmly under his suit pants. He agreed to join them—why not? A night out as “one of the guys” sounded… normal. Refreshing. He did remember to call Carolyn, though—not just to say he’d be late, but to ask if it was okay. The evening unfolded at the steakhouse: bourbon flowing (David knocking back three before the appetizers arrived), rare filets and cigars, war stories from past trials swapped like trading cards. David leaned into it, his baritone booming as he recounted a killer cross-exam from last week. For a few hours he felt like the old David: the shark, the ego, the man who commanded rooms without a hint of lace or powder. No waddling, no lisping—just crude jokes and backslaps. He drank a little too much, the bourbon hitting harder than it used to, blurring the edges of his double life. By midnight the group dispersed. David called a cab, waving off offers for a ride. “Gotta get home to the ball and chain,” he joked, earning laughs. In the back seat, head lolling against the window, the thrill faded into quiet reflection. That felt good. Being a man again. But as the cab pulled into his driveway, the nursery light glowing faintly upstairs, a familiar pull tugged at him. Inside, he just wanted to get into bed with Carolyn and cuddle up beside her and sleep. He stripped off the suit, taped on a fresh diaper (the feel of it hugging his skin was non-negotiable—wet or dry, it was his secret comfort), and slipped into a simple night dress. The master bedroom felt different. He didn’t recall the last time he had slept in here. He slid under the covers, the diaper crinkling softly, and Carolyn stirred awake. She told him he was not sleeping there. He was shocked. He had always chosen the crib; it wasn’t required. So, when he asserted himself and told her he was going to sleep in the bed tonight, she explained that she could tell he’d been drinking and he always snores when he drinks. So, he needed to sleep in the crib. Her voice was softer, but her tone was firm. When he hesitated, she asked if she needed to get out the paddle? He meekly replied no and sauntered off to the crib. As he lay in the crib that night he wondered when exactly their room had become her room. Saturday dawned bright. David woke with a slight hangover. He showered, dressed in khakis and a polo—no diaper underneath—and headed to the country club for a long-planned golf outing with his buddies. At the first tee, the group greeted him with mock surprise. “Holy shit, it’s David! We thought you died, man. Or Carolyn had you chained to the bedpost.” “Rumors of my demise are exaggerated,” he shot back, grinning. “Trial’s been hell—weekends are sacred time with the wife.” They teed off, the banter flowing easy. David felt alive in the crisp air, the swing of the club a reminder of his “man’s man” side. But on the fourth hole, he topped his drive—ball skittering weakly into the rough. “Oof,” one buddy laughed. “Hitting like a girl today, huh?” The joke landed like a spark. David’s mind flashed: himself on the course in a woman’s golf outfit—short white skirt fluttering over a bulging diaper, tank top hugging his smooth chest, long hair in a ponytail bouncing as he swung. He imagined his friends watching, teasing: “Look at Daisy slice it!” The image hit hard—humiliating, arousing. He pushed it down, forcing a laugh. “Give me a mulligan. It’s been too long.” The round finished strong—his score solid for the hiatus. At the clubhouse bar, beers turned to bourbons. “To the ghost returning from the dead,” they toasted. David soaked it in, the camaraderie a balm against the isolation of his secrets. Home by late afternoon, he stripped down, taped on a diaper, and put on a comfortable dress. He was on the couch while football droned on the TV, but his mind wandered back to the golf fantasy. The exposure, the teasing—it stirred him. He stroked slowly through the padding, imagining his buddies’ shocked laughs, Carolyn watching approvingly. Chapter 26: The Night She Remembered How to Feel After all the disappointing online dates, Carolyn deleted every profile, closed every chat window, and told Daisy, “I need a break from the internet circus.” David had spent the previous weekend reclaiming fragments of his old self—dinner with work friends Friday, golf Saturday—calling Carolyn each time to check if it was okay, a subtle shift she noted with quiet satisfaction. While he swung clubs and traded bourbon-fueled stories, Carolyn pondered her next move. The apps had yielded nothing but disappointment; she needed something more organic, more real. So, she decided to do it the old-fashioned way. When Carolyn last dated, she’d get dolled up, put on a pretty dress, and go where the music was, letting the night take her where it would. Linda agreed to come along as her wing-woman, to keep things safe. It was the following Saturday night, and Daisy—frilled and freshly diapered in a cloud-soft lavender baby-doll nightie—looked up as she told her the plan. “So… you’re going dancing?” “With Linda. Just to dance. If something happens, it happens. If not, I still get to feel pretty for a night.” Daisy’s eyes shone with that complicated cocktail of fear and devotion. “You’ll look beautiful, Mommy.” Carolyn knelt, kissed the top of Daisy’s bonnet, and whispered, “Don’t wait up, princess.” She left the house dressed to kill: a sleeveless black dress that hugged every curve, strappy heels, hair loose and shining. Linda waited in the car, grinning like a conspirator. The club was downtown—low amber lights, a live band that knew how to balance slow burns and up-tempo grooves. Linda played perfect wing-woman: close enough to rescue, far enough to make Carolyn look deliciously available. Carolyn stood at the bar nursing sparkling water with lime when Robert appeared. He didn’t crowd her. He simply materialized at her side—tall, athletic build, light brown hair neatly styled, clean-shaven with a warm, confident smile. “Mind if I stand here? You look like you’re waiting for someone who doesn’t deserve you.” Carolyn laughed before she could stop herself. “Something like that.” Conversation came easy. He asked real questions, listened to the answers, made her laugh until her sides hurt. When the band slipped into a slow, smoky number he held out one large hand. “Dance with me.” It wasn’t a question. On the floor his palm settled at the small of her back—firm, warm, unmistakably possessive. She fit against him perfectly, cheek brushing the soft cotton over his chest. He smelled like cedar and clean skin. They swayed more than danced, bodies gradually aligning until she could feel the steady beat of his heart. Guilt flickered through her like a shadow—David at home, curled in his crib, diapered and pretty, waiting for her to return. Begging her to do this. The life they’d built, twisted now into something secret and sharp. What am I doing? But the thought dissolved as Robert’s hand tightened slightly, pulling her closer. His body was solid, alive in a way she hadn’t felt in years, and the contrast hit her hard: David’s quick, selfish fumbles versus this slow, deliberate heat. She deserved this, didn’t she? After a decade of obligation, of faking satisfaction to protect his ego? Halfway through the second song she became aware of him—really aware. The unmistakable weight pressing against her lower belly as they moved. Thick. Heavy. Even through fabric there was no mistaking it. A rush of warmth pooled between her thighs, her pulse quickening in time with the music. His breath ghosted her ear, thumbs tracing lazy circles at her hips, each pass sending sparks up her spine. She pressed closer without thinking, her body betraying the conflict in her mind—home, Daisy, the crib waiting—yet here she was, melting under a stranger’s touch, craving more. Heat flooded her cheeks and between her legs. She pulled back just enough to look up at him. He met her eyes, calm and amused, and let her feel it for another long moment before easing the pressure. “Too much?” he asked softly. “No,” she whispered, surprised at her own honesty. “Just… new.” They danced twice more. Each time his hands drifted a fraction lower, thumbs tracing the curve where her back became her hips. When the lights came up for last call he walked her to coat check, slipped her jacket over her shoulders like he’d been doing it for years. Outside on the sidewalk the air was cool. He turned her to face him, cupped her jaw with one large hand, and kissed her. Not rushed. Not sloppy. A slow, deliberate claim: lips firm, tongue teasing just enough to make her knees weak. When he pulled back her lipstick was gone and she was breathing like she’d run a mile. “Friday night,” he said. “Dinner. I’ll pick you up at eight. Wear something that makes you feel dangerous.” She managed a nod. He brushed his thumb across her lower lip. “Text me your address, beautiful.” Then he was gone. The drive home was a blur. Guilt sat cold in her stomach even as her body still thrummed. He has no idea what he’s walking into. He has no idea I’m only free because my husband is curled in a crib, begging me to do this. She gripped the steering wheel tighter. But God, it felt real. She let herself in quietly just after one. The house was silent except for the faint crinkle from the nursery monitor. Daisy was asleep on her back, pacifier bobbing gently, diaper massively swollen and sagging. One hand rested on her tummy; the other clutched the blanket printed with tiny unicorns. She looked utterly peaceful. Carolyn stood in the doorway for a long time, chest aching. I’m doing this for both of us, she told herself. Then, softer: Aren’t I? She slipped off her heels, padded to the crib, and leaned over the rail to kiss Daisy’s warm forehead. “Mommy met someone,” she whispered into the quiet. “Someone who makes me feel like a woman again.” Daisy stirred, murmured something that sounded like “love you,” and settled deeper into the damp padding. Carolyn’s eyes filled. Friday, she thought. Two more days. She raised the blanket higher, turned on the night-light that cast pink stars across the ceiling, and left her little girl to dream. Chapter 27: Robert's Move Robert wasn’t planning on hitting the club that night. He’d had a long week—another failed “relationship” (if you could call it that) with some clingy receptionist who thought one blowjob meant commitment. He was sprawled on his couch, beer in hand, scrolling through hookup apps for something quick and uncomplicated when his phone buzzed. It was Tommy, his buddy behind the bar at Club Eclipse downtown. “Prime target tonight, man. Married, gorgeous, alone at the bar. Rock on her finger, no ring tan line. She’s looking.” Robert grinned, already grabbing his keys. “On my way.” He’d been doing this dance for years. Divorced at thirty-two after his ex got tired of his “late nights at the office” (code for other women’s beds), he’d sworn off anything resembling commitment. Women were for fun—objects to admire, use, discard when they got boring or demanding. No strings, no drama, no love. He wasn’t capable of that shit anyway. Caring? That was for suckers. The married ones were his favorite. Bored housewives seeking excitement, revenge sluts punishing cheating husbands, or half-divorced messes looking for validation. Whatever their story, it worked for him. Easy entry, no expectations, pure physical release. He was good-looking—tall, athletic from gym sessions fueled by ego, light brown hair styled just messy enough, clean-shaven to look “approachable.” He knew it, used it. Dominant in bed, emotionally distant everywhere else. Alpha through and through—entitled, possessive when it suited him, always competitive with whatever pathetic husband was waiting at home. He arrived at Eclipse in under twenty minutes, scanning the room. Tommy nodded toward the bar. There she was: auburn hair cascading down her back, black dress hugging curves that screamed neglected wife, sparkling water in hand like she was trying to play it safe. Stunning. Ripe. Robert didn’t rush. He ordered a whiskey neat, positioned himself casually beside her, and let the opener drop. “Mind if I stand here? You look like you’re waiting for someone who doesn’t deserve you.” She laughed—good sign. Nervous, but open. Conversation flowed. He asked the right questions, listened just enough to seem interested, made her laugh with practiced charm. When the band slowed, he extended his hand. “Dance with me.” On the floor he pulled her close, hand firm at her lower back, letting her feel him—thick, hard, insistent. He watched her flush, felt her press back despite herself. Perfect. The kiss outside sealed it: slow, claiming, leaving her breathless. “Friday night,” he said. “Dinner. I’ll pick you up at eight. Wear something that makes you feel dangerous.” She nodded, hooked. Friday, he thought as he walked away. Dinner first—make her feel special—then back to his place. Some of that neglected married pussy. He’d have her screaming his name by midnight, begging for next time before morning. He walked away smiling. Another married pussy lined up. No complications. Just sex. Chapter 28: The Waiting Wednesday morning hit David like a freight train. He sat in his office, Pharma deposition transcripts spread across the desk like a battlefield map. The star witness for the defense had cracked under cross yesterday—admitting inconsistencies that gutted half their defenses. The partners were buzzing; settlement talks were already floating. “Keep this up,” the managing partner had said, “and that early retirements yours. Live the good life, David.” The good life. He stared at the calendar: Friday circled in red. Dinner with Robert. His stomach twisted. What the hell have I done? The night before had been a haze of relief and regret. Carolyn’s recounting of the club—every detail of the dances, the kiss, Robert’s confidence—had left Daisy sobbing in ecstasy during “play time.” But now, as David the lawyer, suit crisp and diaper discreetly taped beneath (a thin daytime one, no meetings today), the reality clawed at him. She’d leave me in a heartbeat for someone like that. Strong. Capable. The kind of man who doesn’t beg to be diapered. The fear was old, bone-deep—the same insecurity that had always lurked under his courtroom bluster. He’d built the alpha persona to hide it, but now it was cracking. If she falls for him… But the twist came, protective as always: If it’s my idea, my gift, then it’s proof she loves me enough to stay. Sacrifice. Devotion. Twisted, yes, but it kept the panic at bay. He shifted in his chair, the diaper crinkling faintly—his secret armor, worn more often now even at work. No one noticed. No one ever noticed. The comfort grounded him, a buffer against the stress of the case and the storm building at home. With Linda that afternoon (her “tea” sessions a weekly anchor), Carolyn confessed her nerves. “He’s… intense. What if it’s too much too soon?” Linda’s voice was soothing, the room softening. “Trust your pace. You’re in control. And remember—Daisy’s happiness is in your fulfillment. Let this be your gift to her too.” Carolyn left motivated; doubts quieted. Thursday: Another strong depo. The plaintiff’s experts lined up perfectly; defenses were crumbling. “You’re on fire,” a junior associate said. David nodded, bourbon in hand, but his mind was elsewhere. That evening, as Daisy in a soft pink sundress and dry diaper, he helped Carolyn plan her outfit for Friday. “Something dangerous,” Robert had said. They chose a sleek red dress together, Daisy snapping photos for reference, heart pounding with jealousy-laced excitement. “You’ll be stunning,” Daisy whispered. Carolyn kissed her forehead. “For us, baby girl.” That night, in the crib (rail down, but the symbolism heavy), Daisy lay in a fresh nighttime diaper, staring at the spinning mobile. Carolyn had tucked her in early, kissing her pacifier-stuffed mouth. “Don’t stay up too long, princess. Tomorrow’s a big night.” As the lullaby played, doubt crashed in. Relief from the day’s “no disasters” at work mingled with terror. Robert. Real. Happening. What if he steals her? What if she realizes she doesn’t need a freak in diapers? What if this ruins everything—the nursery, the comfort, the life I’ve begged for? The fear twisted, as always: But if she does it for me… it’s proof. Love. Sacrifice. Still, the crib felt confining tonight. Should I stop it? Tell her it’s a mistake? Beg to go back—to being David full-time, husband, not… this? Tears slipped down her cheeks. David allowed himself to dream about a life after winning the Pharma case: endless days as Daisy, no more insecurity about providing. But the twist nagged: If she’s with Robert, will she even want me around? A sissy baby girl in a frilly lavender baby-doll nightie trimmed with white lace ruffles, bonnet tied under her chin, thick diaper warmed from a deliberate wetting—how could that ever compete with a real man? But sleep came slowly, laced with dreams of empty nurseries and Carolyn walking away. Tomorrow would decide everything. Chapter 29: The Parking Lot Friday night arrived like a held breath. Carolyn stood in front of the full-length mirror in the master bedroom, smoothing the crimson wrap dress that hugged her curves exactly the way Robert had asked: something that made her feel dangerous. Her hair was loose in soft waves, lips painted a deep, defiant red. She looked like desire itself. Daisy watched from the nursery doorway, dressed for the occasion in a thick nighttime diaper printed with tiny tiaras, white lace rumba panties with rows of ruffles, and a short satin baby-doll nightie in pale pink. A matching bow was tied in her curls, and a pacifier dangled from a ribbon around her neck. The sight of Carolyn—radiant, powerful, leaving to meet another man—sent a dizzying cocktail of fear and arousal through her. “You look… incredible, Mommy,” Daisy whispered. Carolyn turned, eyes softening. She crossed the hall and pulled Daisy into a gentle hug, careful not to crush the dress. “Be good tonight, princess. No touching. Mommy wants you aching when I get home so you can hear every detail.” Daisy nodded against her shoulder, diaper already warming with an involuntary spurt. Carolyn kissed the top of her head. “I love you.” “I love you more,” Daisy answered, voice small and sincere. The doorbell rang at eight sharp. Robert stood on the porch in a charcoal shirt open at the collar, dark jeans, and that same easy, confident smile. His eyes traveled over her slowly, appreciatively. “You followed instructions perfectly,” he murmured. “Dangerous looks good on you.” The restaurant was intimate—low lighting, corner table, wine he ordered for himself and sparkling water for her without making her feel childish about it. Conversation flowed: architecture, travel, music, the city. He listened. Really listened. When she spoke he leaned in, eyes locked on hers, as if the rest of the room had vanished. After dessert he paid without glancing at the bill and led her to his SUV in the quiet parking garage. The moment the door closed behind them the air changed. He backed her gently against the cool metal of the car, hands sliding to her waist. “I’ve been thinking about this since Tuesday,” he said, voice low. Then he kissed her. Not the careful, testing kiss from the club. This one was hungry—lips firm, tongue stroking hers with deliberate patience, one hand cupping her jaw, the other pressing at the small of her back until she felt every inch of him hard against her belly. A soft sound escaped her throat; she clutched his shoulders, knees weakening. God, he was huge. They made out like teenagers: windows fogging, her dress riding up, his fingers teasing the edge of her lace panties. When he slipped a hand inside her bra and rolled her nipple, she gasped his name. He pressed harder against her, letting her feel every inch. His mouth moved to her neck, teeth grazing just enough to make her gasp. “Tell me to stop and I will,” he whispered against her skin. She couldn’t speak. She didn’t want him to stop. She felt herself grow slick, aching, years of careful restraint unraveling in the dim garage light. He drew back just enough to meet her eyes. “I need you,” he growled against her throat. She wanted to. God, she wanted to spread her legs right there. But a wave of guilt crashed over her—David at home, curled in his crib, diapered and pretty, begging her to do this. The life they’d built, twisted now into something secret and sharp. Could she really cross this line? She pulled back, breathing hard. “Not tonight. I’m… I’m not ready.” Robert studied her for a moment, then nodded—respectful on the surface, but hunger flashing in his eyes. “Fair. But you’re not leaving me like this.” He guided her hand to his zipper and pressed it against the straining fabric. “On your knees, beautiful. Take care of me with that pretty mouth.” Carolyn’s heart stuttered, a little shocked. He’d been such a gentleman until that moment. She shook her head, cheeks burning. “I don’t… I’m not that kind of girl. I’ve never done that, not even for my husband.” Robert’s brow lifted, feigning surprise. “I didn’t know you were married!” “Yes you did,” Carolyn replied. “I’m wearing my wedding ring. You knew!” She met his eyes. He smiled, something darker flickering across his face. “Never? Really?” “Never. And I never will.” Robert searched her face for a long second, curiosity warring with raw desire. Whatever question formed behind his eyes dissolved under the weight of wanting her. He exhaled, a low, hungry sound. “Then use your hand,” he said, voice rough. “Slow. Like you mean it.” She did. It was exciting—larger than anything she’d known, feeling so right in her hand. When he climaxed, his head thrown back, her name on his lips as he spilled hot and thick over her fingers and the handkerchief he produced like a gentleman. When he kissed her afterward, soft and grateful, she felt cherished and filthy in the most perfect way. The drive to her house was quiet, charged. His hand rested on her thigh the entire way—high enough to tease, low enough to be respectable. When he pulled into the driveway he killed the engine and went around to open her door. He walked her to the front door and gave her a passionate goodnight kiss. “Next time,” he said simply, “my place. No interruptions.” She nodded, breathless. Carolyn entered her home, leaning against the door, heart hammering, Carolyn felt the glow—but a shadow crept in. The plan, the hypnosis... it had given her this freedom, but at David's expense? Twisting his vulnerabilities for her pleasure felt wrong, even if he begged now. Ethical doubts nagged, but the thrill won—for tonight. Upstairs the nursery night-light glowed pink. Daisy was awake in the crib, eyes wide, diaper massively swollen from hours of anxious wetting. “Mommy?” she whispered as Carolyn slipped into the room. Carolyn climbed over the rail and pulled Daisy into her arms, still tasting Robert on her lips. “Hi, baby girl,” she murmured, voice husky. “Mommy had the most wonderful night.” She told her everything—every word, every touch, every promise—while her hand drifted slowly over the front of Daisy’s soaked diaper. Daisy sobbed with gratitude and need, hips twitching helplessly. Outside, in the quiet street, Robert’s SUV idled for a moment longer. He smiled to himself, adjusted the front of his trousers, and drove away. Soon. Chapter 30: The Hypnotist's Reflections The morning after Carolyn's second date with Robert, she met Linda for tea at their usual café—sunlit corner table, chamomile for both. "You look... alive," Linda said, eyes warm. "Tell me everything." Carolyn recounted the night—the chemistry, the kisses, the thrill of coming home to Daisy's eager questions. "It's working. He's satisfied in ways I never imagined. But the guilt... sometimes it creeps in. Hiding the hypnosis from him." Linda squeezed her hand. "You're giving him what he needs too—surrender, acceptance. But remember what we've talked about: true happiness comes from openness. No bottling feelings. When the time's right, share it all. Honesty will bind you tighter." Carolyn nodded, doubt easing. "You're right. It feels... right." Linda smiled. "I'm proud of you. Keep going—you both deserve this joy." They agreed on their usual quiet café for lunch, parting with laughter and promises. Linda stayed behind after Carolyn left and sat for a long moment, staring at her tea. Carolyn’s glow was everything she’d hoped for. But as the thrill of her friend’s joy faded, quieter reflections crept in. The risks she’d taken, the professional lines she’d crossed—they felt heavier now, in the light of such visible progress. Yet, looking back, she knew it had been worth it. Carolyn was her oldest friend, her sister in all but blood. Their bond had formed in the haze of college life—shared dorm rooms at the university, late-night cram sessions over psychology texts for Carolyn and pre-med notes for Linda, dreams of changing lives one patient at a time. They were inseparable then, two young women navigating the world with wide-eyed optimism. Linda had stood as maid of honor at the wedding, beaming as Carolyn walked toward David, the charming law student who seemed like a storybook match. The courtship had been whirlwind—passionate, full of promise—and the vows felt like the start of something eternal. But eternity, Linda learned, could erode slowly. Over the years, during their weekly teas that became as ritualistic as breathing, Linda watched the light in Carolyn’s eyes dim. The passion faded, replaced by quiet resignation. Carolyn confided in fragments at first, then floods: the frustration in the bedroom, how David’s quick finishes and small size left her unsatisfied, the way she faked pleasure time and again to protect his fragile ego. It wasn’t just physical—Carolyn felt trapped, obligated to a marriage that provided financial security but starved her emotionally and sensually. Deeper layers emerged over time: the guilt from her high school past, that first intense love with an older boyfriend, the frequent, joyful sex she’d embraced as a young woman exploring her desires. Until her father discovered it. His crushing disapproval—harsh words about morality and respect—had shattered her, compounded by his sudden death shortly after. The loss left her drowning in shame and grief, turning to religion for solace, vowing chastity until marriage as penance. But marriage brought no redemption, only more duty, more faking, more quiet erosion of the vibrant woman Linda had known. One Wednesday, months before everything escalated, Linda had decided she couldn’t watch anymore. During their “tea,” she’d gently guided Carolyn into a light trance—subtle, unannounced, born from a deep well of compassion. She probed those roots of guilt carefully, her voice a soothing anchor. “Your past was joy, not sin,” she’d suggested softly. “Release the shame; embrace pleasure without fear.” Carolyn awoke refreshed, none the wiser, chatting on as if nothing had changed. But over subsequent sessions, the shifts bloomed gradually: less hesitation in her voice when speaking of desires, more openness about what she truly needed. Linda justified it to herself—friendship transcended the rigid boundaries of her profession. Carolyn was suffering, quietly fading; this was an act of love, not manipulation. The ethics still nagged her in quiet moments—confidentiality, informed consent, the ever-present risk of dependency. Professional guidelines were unequivocal: no dual relationships without full disclosure, avoid exploiting vulnerabilities at all costs. But love for her friend overrode caution. Carolyn was trapped in a life that dimmed her spirit; Linda had the tools to free her. Then David’s appointment had blindsided her completely. Her assistant had booked it and she didn’t even look at the name of the new patient. Only when he walked into her office, sitting down with that familiar fidget, did the conflict hit like a wave. Carolyn’s husband, here for therapy? The implications crashed over her: an immediate, glaring conflict of interest. Dual relationships were forbidden without explicit disclosure and consent from all parties. Sending him away now, this late, would require an explanation—one that risked breaching Carolyn’s confidentiality entirely. And Carolyn didn’t even know about her own sessions; revealing that could unravel everything. What a mess, Linda thought, her mind racing through the ethical hoops: potential complaints to the board, investigations, the career she’d built on trust and precision hanging by a thread. She’d nearly turned him away with a vague excuse about scheduling conflicts, but curiosity—and a flicker of opportunity—held her back. David sat there, fidgeting, dancing around his issue before finally confessing: the diaper fetish, the binge-purge cycles that had shadowed him since college, the all-consuming shame that made him feel unworthy of love. Linda maintained her professional calm, nodding empathetically, but inside she reeled. She’d never suspected something so profound from the man Carolyn described as egotistical and distant. As he spoke, pieces fell into place—linking it to Carolyn’s unhappiness, the emotional barriers, the unsatisfying intimacy that left her feeling unseen and unfulfilled. She decided in that moment: Probe deeper. See if help was possible. If not, gather insights that might aid Carolyn’s treatment. It was a risky pivot, but one driven by care—for Carolyn, and now, unexpectedly, for David too. She tried earnestly at first, committing to weeks of sessions, hours upon hours delving into the roots of his desires. David opened slowly, his voice trembling as he recounted his childhood. Bedwetting had plagued him until eleven, a source of endless embarrassment in a household where vulnerability was met with disdain. His parents' frustration had peaked when he was eight: “They diapered me one night to shame me into a cure,” he whispered, eyes distant, as if reliving the moment. “Big cloth ones, safety pins, crinkly plastic pants. They said if I acted like a baby, I’d be treated like one. I cried all night, humiliated, begging them to take it off. But… the warmth when I finally let go, the way it hugged me… it felt safe. Like punishment was the only attention I got, twisted into something comforting. Wrong, but mine.” The shaming hadn’t cured the bedwetting—it had embedded the diapers as a forbidden refuge, a way to reclaim control in a world that made him feel small and unworthy. Puberty rediscovered it in a rush of hormones and isolation: finding old diapers hidden in the attic at thirteen, taping one on in secret during a lonely afternoon. “The flood came first,” he admitted, face burning with recalled shame, “then the masturbation. Furious, desperate. It was better than anything real—no rejection, no failure. Just release.” Girls had been a minefield of inadequacy. Small, awkward, always picked last in sports, he was the kid who got good grades but no dates. At fourteen, Sarah had been a miracle—gorgeous, kind despite her muscular dystrophy that gave her a distinctive waddle. They shared make-out sessions, her letting him touch her breasts, building to that weekend her parents were away. “I stayed over, naive as hell,” he said, voice cracking even years later. “Thought it was just going to be time together. But she was on birth control, and wanted sex. I… couldn’t. I was too small, too nervous. I failed completely.” She was gentle about it, but then stopped taking my calls. About a week later, she broke up with me saying it was her not me, but I knew it was me. She had a new boyfriend within a week. “That rejection—it crushed me. I went back to the diapers. Masturbating in the wet ones became my escape. The shame made it hotter, like punishing myself for not being enough.” Linda listened with genuine empathy, exploring the triggers: the shame-reward loop, how rejection fueled a dependency on self-soothing rituals. David was no monster—just a man shaped by bad parenting, where love was conditional and vulnerability punished. The diapers had become armor, a way to internalize rejection before the world could deliver it. But progress stalled. The fetish was lifelong, woven into his identity from those early traumas. She couldn’t erase it—only redirect or suppress, and suppression had failed him before, leaving him in cycles of binge and purge that only deepened the shame. Then, in a deeper session, she probed further, uncovering other kinks layered atop the core: sexualizing rejection and shame (“It hurts, but… excites me, like proof I’m not worthy”), cross-dressing (“Pretty things feel right, but wrong—like hiding the failure in something beautiful”), pegging and spanking (“Punishment makes it real, turns the hurt into release”). And cuckolding: “If she cheats because I’m inadequate… it proves I’m not enough, but if I ask for it, it’s my control. My way to keep her.” Realization dawned slowly for Linda: Embrace this fully, and Carolyn could find happiness elsewhere. Help both of them. David wasn’t a villain—he was a victim of rejection, building fetishes as shields against unworthiness. Bad parenting had planted the seeds; puberty and heartbreak had watered them. Linda felt a pang of sympathy for him, this man who craved love but armored himself against it. If guided right, perhaps he could find peace in surrender. The risks were immense—ethical breaches, potential dependency, backlash if discovered. But friendship won out. She urged honest conversations in their sessions, but both were stubborn, unwilling to share secrets. When Carolyn came desperate one day, seeking a way out without destruction, Linda acted—seeing the path to free them both. Now, with Carolyn on the cusp of real passion, Linda felt vindicated. The plan was working, human flaws and all. But as she finished her tea alone, doubt lingered: At what cost? Chapter 31: The Big Night Saturday David sat at his home-office desk in the pinkest, frilliest dress Carolyn had bought for him: layers of satin and organza the color of strawberry frosting, puffed sleeves trimmed in white lace, a heart-shaped bodice embroidered with tiny roses, and a hem so short it fluttered above the waistband of his diaper every time he breathed. Beneath it all, the thick overnight diaper she had taped on him that morning after their cuddle—no reward, no release, just a lingering kiss and the promise, “Save it for tonight, baby girl.” His erection had been a constant, aching presence all day, tenting the front of the diaper in a shameful bulge that no amount of lace could hide. On the screen in front of him were stories he had read a hundred times: wives taking lovers while their husbands watched from playpens, sissy babies who couldn’t satisfy their wives and were put into diapers and dresses and forced to watch real men fucking their wives because they were unable to satisfy them. He had bookmarked dozens of them over the years, always in secret, masturbating furiously in wet diapers while reading them—but only when he knew he wouldn’t be caught. He rarely did this now that Carolyn was fully participating. When he did, he would feel guilty, like he was cheating. Yet today, he needed the stories. Here he was, living as the sissy baby girl he had always dreamed of being—and tonight his wife was about to cuckold him. Not some fantasy about it, but the real thing. The realization hit him like warm water: this could change everything. He had been a diaper lover since puberty. He thought back to the first time he walked into the pharmacy and bought the first package of Attends. He remembered the first wetting, the first explosive orgasm into swollen padding—he remembered every detail. He thought about how much money he wasted over the years with his binge-purge cycle. He still had a hard time believing that this was all real. His wife actually accepted his desires and was participating. It was always a dream. Always a fantasy. Now it was his reality. In most ways it was better than the fantasy ever was. This had been part of his life so long; he couldn’t remember a time when he didn’t love diapers. As he sat at his computer reading stories about events that were happening to him in real life, he couldn’t believe how lucky he was. He went to Linda hoping to rid himself of this part of him. Now, he was so glad that she couldn’t do it. He was so grateful for what she had done. When she told him at that last session “I think I can help both of you,” he had no idea how much help she would be. Now, a years later, he sat in a baby-doll dress that cost more than most of his Armani suits, diaper swollen from three deliberate wettings that morning, erection throbbing with every heartbeat, and realized he was living the fantasy he had feared to ever speak aloud. How had Linda done it? How had Carolyn agreed? He didn’t understand the mechanics—only the miracle. “Daisy!” Carolyn’s voice floated up the stairs, snapping him out of his daze. “It’s time to get ready, princess.” He toddled downstairs on shaky legs. Carolyn stood in the bedroom in a black lace bra and matching thong, hair in loose waves, makeup flawless. She looked like sin poured into silk. She turned, smiling at the sight of him. “Look at my pretty girl. Been thinking about tonight all day, haven’t you?” Daisy nodded, blushing furiously. Carolyn held up two dresses: one crimson, one midnight blue. “Which one says ‘fuck me senseless’ better, baby?” Daisy’s voice came out a squeak. “The… the red one, Mommy.” “Good choice.” She slipped it on, the fabric clinging to every curve. “Robert is going to rip this off me the second the door closes.” She stepped into sky-high heels, spritzed perfume between her breasts, then between her thighs, winking at Daisy in the mirror. “Somewhere he’ll definitely notice.” Daisy whimpered. Carolyn knelt, untaped the soaked daytime diaper, cleaned her with warm wipes, powdered lavishly, and taped on a fresh nighttime one—extra thick, pastel pink with rows of sleeping princesses and ruffled lace that fluttered like a tutu. Over it went the frilliest nightie in the wardrobe: baby-pink chiffon with puffed sleeves, a hem that barely reached the diaper’s waistband, and a matching bonnet tied under Daisy’s chin. Carolyn kissed her forehead. “Be a good girl. You don’t need to wait up for Mommy. It might be very late. It could even be tomorrow morning. Either way, no touching. Save every drop for when I tell you the story.” Daisy nodded solemnly. “Daisy promises.” Carolyn cupped her padded crotch, gave a gentle squeeze that made Daisy gasp. “That’s my perfect little baby girl.” She grabbed her purse, blew a kiss, and walked out the door. Daisy stood in the foyer long after the car pulled away, heart pounding so hard the lace on her dress trembled. The next time that door opened, everything would be different. She would finally be the sissy cuckold baby girl she had always wanted to be. And she had never been more excited and more terrified in her entire life. Chapter 32: Carolyn Comes Alive Carolyn paused at the front door, hand on the knob, heart hammering. She turned back to Daisy—her beautiful, ridiculous, frilly husband standing in the foyer like a life-sized doll—and leaned in to kiss the powdered forehead peeking from beneath the bonnet. “Be a good girl,” she whispered. “You don’t need to wait up for Mommy. It might be very late. It could even be tomorrow morning. Either way, no touching. Save every drop for when I tell you the story.” She waited. This was the moment. The last possible second for him to snap out of it, to grab her wrist and say, Wait, this is insane, I don’t want this. But Daisy only gazed up at her with shining, trusting eyes and lisped, “Yes, Mommy. Daisy will be good.” Carolyn’s stomach flipped. He really, truly wanted it. All of it. She wasn’t going to hold back tonight. She was really going to do it, she thought. She closed the door softly behind her and walked to the car on legs that felt borrowed. How had they gotten here? She had expected resistance—tears, bargaining, anything. Instead, David had melted into Daisy like ice cream in July. The diapers, the dresses, the crib, the begging to be cuckolded… it had happened so fast, so completely. And every step of the way she had reminded herself what Linda had drilled into her: you can’t hypnotize someone into something they don’t already want. Deep down, he had always wanted this. And, God help her, so had she. The drive to Robert’s was twenty-seven minutes. She spent every one of them alternating between giddy anticipation and a low thrum of guilt. Robert opened the door in a charcoal Henley and soft gray sweatpants, barefoot, smiling like he’d been waiting his whole life for this moment. “Hey, beautiful.” He didn’t give her time to overthink. One hand cupped her face, the other closed the door, and then he was kissing her—slow, deliberate, claiming. The kiss from the parking lot had been a promise; this one delivered. He walked her backward until her shoulders met the wall, never breaking contact. His mouth moved to her neck, teeth grazing just hard enough to make her gasp. “I’ve been thinking about this since Tuesday,” he said, voice low. Then he kissed her again. Not the careful, testing kiss from the club. This one was hungry—lips firm, tongue stroking hers with deliberate patience, one hand cupping her jaw, the other pressing at the small of her back until she felt every inch of him hard against her belly. A soft sound escaped her throat; she clutched his shoulders, knees weakening. God, he was huge. They made out against the wall: her dress riding up, his fingers teasing the edge of her lace panties. When he slipped a hand inside her bra and rolled her nipple, she gasped his name. He pressed harder against her, letting her feel every inch. His mouth moved to her neck, teeth grazing just enough to make her gasp. “Tell me to stop and I will,” he whispered against her skin. She couldn’t speak. She didn’t want him to stop. She felt herself grow slick, aching, years of careful restraint unraveling in the dim hallway light. He drew back just enough to meet her eyes. “I need you,” he growled against her throat. She wanted to. God, she wanted to spread her legs right there. But a small pang of guilt flickered—David at home, curled in his crib, diapered and pretty, waiting for her to return. Begging her to do this. She pulled back, breathing hard. “Not… not here. Let’s go to the bedroom.” Robert’s eyes darkened with approval. He lifted her easily—she weighed nothing in his arms—and carried her down the hall. Low lights, crisp white sheets, the faint scent of sandalwood. He set her down like something precious, then stood back and looked at her in the red dress. “Take it off. Slowly.” She did, fingers trembling only a little. The dress pooled at her feet. She stood in black lace bra, matching thong, and heels. Robert exhaled; eyes dark. “Jesus, Carolyn.” He stepped close again, hands sliding up her sides, thumbs brushing the undersides of her breasts. When he unhooked her bra and cupped her, she arched into him with a sound she didn’t recognize. He laid her on the bed, kissing every inch he uncovered—collarbone, breasts, stomach—until she was writhing. When he finally peeled the thong away he paused, looking at her like she was a miracle. “You’re perfect,” he said, voice rough. Then his mouth was on her, slow and reverent, tongue circling until she was clutching the sheets and sobbing his name. The orgasm rolled through her like warm honey—long, deep, shattering. Nothing like the polite, hurried fumbles she’d known for a decade. He rose over her, shedding clothes. When he pushed inside her—slow, thick, relentless—she cried out at the stretch, the fullness she had forgotten was possible. He filled her completely, then stilled, letting her adjust, kissing her tears away. “You okay?” “More than okay,” she whispered. “Please don’t stop.” He didn’t. He moved with deliberate power—deep strokes that dragged over every sensitive spot, building her again and again. When she came the second time he followed, groaning her name into her neck, hips stuttering as he emptied himself inside her. Afterward he held her close, stroking her hair, kissing her temple, murmuring soft praises until her breathing slowed. Somewhere in the haze she pictured Daisy at home—frilly nightie, thick diaper, probably rocking in the crib, hard and leaking just thinking about this exact moment. The image sent a fresh pulse of heat through her—her sweet, pathetic baby girl, waiting in lace and plastic while a real man claimed his wife. She came a third time just from that thought, clenching around Robert as he hardened again inside her. Round two was slower, lazier—her on top, riding him with rolling hips while he watched her breasts bounce, hands gripping her waist. When she collapsed forward he flipped her gently, hooked her legs over his shoulders, and took her apart again. They finally stilled near one a.m., tangled and sweaty and utterly spent. “Stay,” he murmured against her hair. “I can’t,” she said, kissing him softly. “Not tonight. But soon.” He walked her to the door, kissed her once more—deep, possessive, promising. “Tomorrow?” he asked. “Not tomorrow, but soon.” she agreed. The drive home was quiet, windows down, cool air on flushed skin. She felt loose, sated, reborn. And guilty. And thrilled. She wondered if Daisy had managed to keep her promise—if that diaper was still untouched, swollen only with pee and desperate need. She hoped so. Because the story she had to tell was going to be worth every aching second of waiting. Chapter 33: Robert's Dilemma Robert had always been the kind of man who knew what he wanted and how to get it. At thirty-eight, he was a senior project manager at a downtown construction firm—broad-shouldered from years of site work before climbing the ladder, with an easy charm that opened doors and a laugh that disarmed even the toughest contractors. Divorced five years ago after a marriage that fizzled out in mutual boredom, he had thrown himself into the single life: gym routines, weekend hikes, and the occasional no-strings fling from apps or bars. Nothing serious. He wasn't looking for complications; life was complicated enough with deadlines and blueprints. That Wednesday at the lounge, Carolyn had caught his eye like a blueprint error—subtle but impossible to ignore. Tall, auburn-haired, with a quiet confidence that stood out in a room full of loud laughs and forced flirtations. He noticed the ring right away, glinting under the amber lights. Married, he thought. Probably bored. Perfect for a one-night distraction. He wasn't proud of it, but that's how he played things: light, fun, no expectations. When she laughed at his line and let him buy her a sparkling water (no alcohol—classy, he noted), the conversation flowed like they’d known each other for years. Dancing sealed it: her body fitting against his, the heat building. He expected the usual—back to his place, a quick release, goodbye in the morning. But she pulled back on the sidewalk, eyes bright but firm. “Not tonight.” Surprise number one. Married women looking for thrills didn’t usually hold back. It intrigued him enough to ask for Friday. Dinner was even better: easy banter, her stories about country club life making him laugh, his tales of construction mishaps drawing her in. Under the table, knees touching, the chemistry crackled. In the parking lot, things heated up fast—her moans, his hands exploring. He was rock hard, ready. But again: “Not tonight.” Surprise number two. She wasn’t just looking for a quick fuck; she was dating him. Teasing the line, but not crossing it yet. It threw him. Married, but selective? He drove home alone, replaying her refusals, wondering what her deal was. He was a little annoyed and was hoping she wasn’t going to end up all clingy like the last one. Saturday night at his loft changed everything. She showed up in that red dress, looking like every fantasy he’d never admitted to. The sex was… explosive. Her body responsive in ways he loved, her gasps genuine, her climaxes pulling him under. Three times—slow, then urgent, then lazy and deep. He hadn’t felt that connected in years. Maybe ever. Lying tangled in sheets, her head on his chest, he traced lazy circles on her back. “Stay,” he murmured, meaning it more than he expected. “I can’t. Not tonight. But soon.” As she dressed, guilt flickered across her face—quick, but he caught it. The ring was back on her finger; she’d slipped it off before they started. Questions bubbled up: Who was the husband? Some soft executive type, probably. Jealous? Violent? Robert had seen enough bar fights to know married men could snap. Did the guy own a gun? Keep tabs on her? What if he found out—tailed her, confronted them? Robert wasn’t looking for drama; he’d had his fill with the divorce. “You sure about this?” he asked quietly, helping her into her coat. “Your husband… if he finds out, what happens? Is he the jealous type? Does he… I don’t know, have a gun or something?” She paused, meeting his eyes with that calm authority he was starting to crave. “He’s not a problem. Trust me. This is… what we both need.” Vague, but her tone shut it down. No details, no reassurances beyond that. Robert let it go—his desire for her overrode the red flags. She was at some point going to be a problem. He could tell. She wasn’t just looking for good sex. She wanted a relationship. But she was married. This was probably short-lived—a fling until guilt or discovery ended it. Could be one of those revenge things for her. Punishing the husband for being unfaithful. He’d take what he could get, savor the highs, and brace for the crash later. He also would be watching his back. He didn’t want an actual confrontation. He kissed her at the door, deep and reluctant. “Tomorrow?” “No, but soon,” she agreed, slipping away into the night. Robert watched her taillights fade, already counting the hours. For now, this was enough. The problems when they came he would deal with—but that was a problem for another day. Chapter 34: Afterglow and Cracks Carolyn let herself in quietly just after one a.m., the cool night air clinging to her skin like a second dress. The house was silent, but as she climbed the stairs, she could hear Daisy moving in the crib. She padded to the nursery door and peered in. Daisy was curled on her side in the crib, pacifier bobbing gently, diaper massively swollen and sagging from hours of anxious wetting. One hand clutched the unicorn blanket; the other was fisted in the satin nightie. Daisy lay in the dark, the high from Mommy's story still echoing through her body. The climax had been explosive—waves of humiliated arousal crashing as Carolyn described every thrust, every moan, every way Robert had claimed her. It was everything Daisy had fantasized about for years: the proof of inadequacy, the devotion in surrender, the twisted thrill of giving Mommy what she deserved. But as the afterglow faded, the crib felt colder. The diaper, heavy and warm, was a comfort—but tonight it also felt like a cage. What if she leaves me? The fear crept in, old and familiar, the same one that had armored him with ego for decades. Carolyn had glowed telling the story—alive in a way he’d never made her. Robert was strong, capable, everything David pretended to be in the courtroom. A real man. This was supposed to prove love. My gift. My way to keep her. But it hurt. Quiet tears slipped down Daisy's cheeks, soaking the pillow. She loved the excitement—the cuckolding was the dream fulfilled; the ultimate humiliation that made everything hotter. But in the silence, fear outweighed thrill. What if tonight was the start of her realizing she didn’t need a diapered sissy anymore? The nursery, the dresses, the life they’d built—gone. She cried softly most of the night, wrestling with jealousy, fear of loss, and a regret that tasted like ashes. Weak moment, she told herself. Tomorrow it’ll feel right again. As Carolyn left the nursery, her heart clenched. She paused in the hallway, listening. The cries were quiet, almost swallowed by the dark, but unmistakable. As Carolyn slipped into the master bedroom—her room now, most nights—and lay awake, body sated but mind racing. A faint sound drifted from the nursery—soft, muffled sobs. Carolyn's chest tightened. The thrill of the night fading into something colder. The sobs continued faintly through the open door, persistent into the early hours. Carolyn’s guilt surfaced, quiet but insistent. She’d broken him. Turned the man she married into this—for her pleasure. She wondered if she’d lost the man she loved in pursuit of the woman she wanted to be. Chapter 35: Doubts Creep In Sunday morning light filtered softly through the nursery blinds, casting pale stripes across the pink walls. Carolyn woke first, body loose and languid, a secret smile tugging at her lips as memories of Robert flooded back—the strength of his hands, the way he'd filled her completely, the multiple waves of pleasure that had left her boneless and breathless. It felt like waking from a long sleep, rediscovering parts of herself she'd thought lost forever. She slipped out of bed and padded to the nursery, expecting to find Daisy still curled in peaceful slumber. Instead, Daisy was awake, sitting up in the crib with the blanket pulled to her chin, eyes puffy and red-rimmed. Carolyn's heart gave a small, uneasy twist. “Good morning, princess.” Daisy turned, forcing a bright smile that didn't quite reach her eyes. “Good morning, Mommy. Did you sleep well?” Carolyn climbed over the rail and pulled her into a hug. “I did. And you? You look like you've been crying.” Daisy nestled closer, voice light. “Happy tears, Mommy. Just… so thrilled for you. Last night sounded perfect.” The words were sweet, devoted—the Daisy Carolyn had come to expect. But something felt off. The enthusiasm rang a fraction too high, the hug a little too tight, as if clinging to reassurance. Carolyn brushed it aside for the moment, changing Daisy with gentle efficiency—fresh diaper, simple sundress for the day. Breakfast was quiet: oatmeal for Daisy in the highchair, tea and cereal for Carolyn. Daisy chattered about little things—the garden, a bird at the feeder—but her eyes kept drifting, distant. By midday, the unease nagged enough that Carolyn called Linda. “I noticed Daisy's eyes this morning—puffy, like she'd cried all night. She said happy tears, but… I don't know. It felt forced.” Linda's voice was warm, steady. “That's normal, Carolyn. Adjustment takes time. He's living his deepest desires—it's overwhelming. The tears are release, not regret. Keep going. Everything will be wonderful. You're giving him what he begged for.” Carolyn exhaled; doubts quieted—for now. “You're right. Thank you.” Internally, though, Linda's reassurance felt thinner. Have I gone too far? David's tears—did I break him? The thought flickered, unwelcome. She'd removed the suggestions long ago, believing in their choices. But hearing about the crying… remorse stirred, quiet but persistent. Monday blurred into routine. David buried himself in Pharma trial that was now in full swing—long hours, late nights. Evenings were Daisy time: diapered, pretty, curled on the couch with Carolyn. Things seemed fine—normal rituals, soft touches, no overt distress. Daisy helped with small tasks, smiled at the right moments. But subtle signs lingered: quieter laughter, longer silences, eyes that drifted when Carolyn mentioned Robert. Mid-week, Robert texted: Dinner Saturday? Miss you already. Carolyn's pulse quickened. Yes, she replied eagerly. Saturday. The week dragged and flew. David won a key motion Friday—partners toasting with bourbon, retirement whispers louder. Home late, he changed into diaper and dress without prompting, the routine grounding. Saturday prep arrived. Carolyn laid out outfits; Daisy helped her choose—a sleek midnight-blue dress this time. “You'll look stunning,” Daisy whispered, snapping reference photos, heart pounding with that familiar jealousy-laced excitement. But quieter this time. More withdrawn. Hands lingering a fraction too long on the fabric, eyes distant. Carolyn noticed. “Everything okay, princess?” Daisy nodded quickly. “Fine, Mommy. Just… excited for you.” The smile was there, but subdued. Carolyn pushed forward, desire for Robert's touch overriding the nag. He's so devoted. Am I selfish for wanting more? Daisy wanted this, she reminded herself. She begged. Guilt nagged, quiet but persistent. She's doing this for us. But as Carolyn dressed, the worry lingered. Doubts crept in, slow and steady. Chapter 36: Robert's True Colors The week had blurred into routine, the Pharma trial now in full swing and swallowing David's days whole. Evenings were quieter—Daisy time, but subdued. No play, no stories retold. Just gentle cuddles and early bedtimes. Saturday arrived too soon. Carolyn dressed carefully: the midnight-blue dress Daisy had helped choose, heels that made her legs look endless, hair loose and shining. She kissed Daisy's forehead before leaving. “Be good, princess. Mommy will be home late.” Daisy nodded; eyes bright but distant. “Have fun, Mommy.” Robert opened his door with that confident smile, pulling her inside before she could speak. Dinner was intimate—Italian takeout on his couch, wine for him, sparkling water for her. Conversation flowed; laughter easy. His hands wandered early: tracing her thigh under the table, brushing her neck when he leaned in. By the time they reached his bedroom, the air crackled. He undressed her slowly this time, eyes devouring. “You’re addictive,” he murmured, mouth trailing fire down her throat. The sex was rougher than before—passionate, urgent. He pinned her wrists above her head, thrusting deep and hard, her cries echoing off the walls. She came twice, clenching around him, nails raking his back. He followed with a growl, collapsing beside her, breathing ragged. They lay tangled, sweat cooling, waiting for him to recover. His fingers traced lazy patterns on her hip. “So,” he said casually, voice low. “Tell me about the husband. He knows about this? Or is this revenge for something?” Carolyn hesitated, the post-orgasm haze and lingering thrill making her tongue loose. “He… knows. It was his idea, actually.” Robert’s brow arched, amusement flickering. “His idea? What, he’s into that kinky open-marriage shit?” She nodded, the words spilling before she could stop them. “More than that. He… he begged me to find someone. A real man.” Robert chuckled, propping on an elbow. “A real man. Cute. So, what’s his deal—can’t get it up? Too small? Pathetic in bed?” The mockery stung, but the wine and warmth dulled it. “Something like that.” He pressed, curiosity sharpening. “Come on, details. Married women don’t just jump into this without a story.” She shouldn’t have said more. But the intimacy of the moment, the way he looked at her like she was his prize—it loosened her guard. “He’s… into diapers. Feminization. Calls himself Daisy when he’s dressed up. Sleeps in a crib.” Robert froze, then burst out laughing—deep, derisive. “You’re shitting me. Diapers? A crib? Your husband’s a fucking freak? Jesus, no wonder you’re here. Dump the loser—be with a real man like me.” The words landed like slaps. Carolyn’s stomach dropped. The laughter wasn’t playful; it was cruel, entitled. She saw him clearly now: narcissistic, competitive, reducing David to a joke to elevate himself. She sat up, pulling the sheet around her. “That’s enough.” Robert shrugged, still smirking. “Come on, babe. You’re telling me you’re tied to some diaper-wearing sissy? That’s pathetic.” The physical pull was still there—his body, the memory of how he'd made her feel. When he reached for her again, she let him. One more time. Rough, desperate, her body betraying her mind. The orgasm crashed through her, leaving her shaking. But afterward, as he dozed smugly beside her, horror flooded in. What have I done? She dressed quickly, muttering an excuse about an early morning. Robert waved it off, already half-asleep. “Next weekend?” She didn’t answer. The drive home was a blur of tears and self-recrimination. Guilt built until it felt overwhelming. I turned David into this—for my own needs. Recruited Linda, pushed the hypnosis, reshaped him into Daisy. I ruined a perfectly wonderful, loving partner and turned him into a weak, pathetic sissy baby. All because I was selfish. I don't deserve to be loved. I don't deserve to be happy. By the time she pulled into the driveway, sobs shook her. The nursery light glowed faintly upstairs. She had broken everything. For her pleasure. Chapter 37: The Spiral Carolyn let herself in quietly just after one a.m., the cool night air clinging to her skin. The house was silent, but a soft, warm glow spilled from the nursery doorway upstairs. She paused at the foot of the stairs, hand on the banister, heart pounding. She couldn't face Daisy. Not yet. The weight of what she'd revealed to Robert—spilling David's secrets in that haze of satisfaction—pressed down like a stone. How could she look at her husband, the man she'd reshaped into Daisy, after a stranger had laughed at him? She climbed the stairs quietly, avoiding the nursery, and slipped into the master bedroom—her room now. The bed was cold, empty. She undressed in the dark, the crimson wrap dress pooling at her feet, and crawled under the covers. Tears came hot and silent, guilt crashing over her in waves. The thoughts of what she had done to her husband looped, relentless, twisting memories into accusations. David had been devoted, hardworking, providing everything. And she'd taken that strong, capable man—the one who'd built a life for them—and broken him for her pleasure. The paddle: not discipline, but cruelty. She'd enjoyed his tears, the power, then retreated to shamefully pleasure herself while he lay in a crib crying and punished. She had forcing him to help find men for her sick desires, ignoring the quiet pain in his eyes. She was truly evil. Sleep came fitfully, fractured by self-loathing. Daisy heard the front door click shut, the soft creak of stairs. Mommy's home. She sat up in the crib, heart racing, diaper warm and thick from deliberate wettings through the long night. The anticipation had been torture—imagining every thrust, every moan, the way Robert claimed what Daisy never could. It was the dream fulfilled; the ultimate humiliation that made everything hotter. She was aching, ready for the story, the relief. But the footsteps passed the nursery door. No light switched on. No soft voice calling her name. Daisy waited, straining to hear. Maybe Carolyn was exhausted. They'd talk in the morning. She lay back down, trying to ignore the gnawing doubt, the fear that tonight had changed everything—for the worse. Morning light filtered through the nursery blinds. Daisy woke to an empty room, no Carolyn with fresh diaper and powder. The rail was down—she could get up herself. She did, on shaky legs, diaper heavy and cold. Showered, dressed in khakis and a polo, and headed downstairs. Carolyn was still in bed, covers pulled high. That didn’t surprise him much—it had been late when she got home, and she deserved rest. Even though it was Sunday, David had work. Evidence had closed last week; Monday he was giving his closing argument. He kissed her forehead—cool, distant—and left, concern knotting his stomach but pushed aside by trial focus. Carolyn lay there long after the door closed, staring at the ceiling. She wanted to get up, make tea, have breakfast, do something normal. But her body felt heavy, muscles stiff and slow, as if gravity had doubled overnight. The bed was the only place that felt tolerable, a cocoon against the storm in her mind. David was working so hard—for their future, for her security. Such a wonderful, caring man. And she'd destroyed him. By evening he returned to find her still in bed, he didn’t see any dishes or signs that she had eaten. He returned to her room again. “Carolyn…” “I’m fine,” she whispered. “Just… a little under the weather.” As David closes the door, she thinks. He is so caring. He loves me so much, but if he knew what I had done to him, he would hate me. Carolyn knows Monday is his big day. He has talked about it for weeks. His closing argument is his chance to convince the jury and secure victory. She won’t burden him any further right now, she’s already done too much to him. I just need to let him get through the trial. Monday David left early, suit sharp, mind focused on his closing argument. Carolyn was still sleeping when he left. He didn’t want to wake her so he quietly left the house and drove to the Courthouse. He came home excited to tell Carolyn all about his closing argument and how well it went. He was surprised to find her in bed. She claimed everything was fine and she would be up and around in no time. She just needed some rest. He didn't push, but panic flickered. Was she really just sick, or did something happen? Did Robert do something? Guilt surged—he'd pushed her into this. It was his idea. If something happened, it was his fault. Tuesday David needed to be at Court first thing in the morning. The case was almost wrapped up and the lawyers and judge were meeting before the jury arrived to do final work on the jury instructions. The defense was to finish its closing that morning and then the case would be given to the jury. He again left before Carolyn was out of bed. He was worried now. He couldn’t be sure, but it seemed she hadn’t left the room since returning from her date with Robert. He asked several times if she was okay, but she assured him it was nothing and she’d be up soon. Carolyn lay in the dim bedroom all day Tuesday, the sheets tangled around her like restraints, her mind a storm that refused to quiet. The events of the past year replayed in her head, but not as they had happened—not the careful steps, the shared decisions, the way David had begged for each new layer. No, in the grip of her guilt, the memories twisted, reshaping themselves into a narrative where she was the villain, the architect of his downfall. It started with that first desperate conversation with Linda, didn't it? She'd gone to her friend, tears in her eyes, confessing how empty the marriage felt, how David's quick, unsatisfying encounters left her feeling like a duty rather than a desire. But in this distorted recollection, it wasn't desperation—it was selfishness. She'd manipulated Linda into helping, demanding a way to fix her boredom without losing the security David provided. The hypnosis? Her idea, her weapon. She'd pushed for it, ignoring any ethical whispers, turning David into a puppet for her pleasure. She remembered the night Linda first triggered him—how he'd slumped in the chair, eyes glassy, and she'd felt a thrill rather than remorse. In her mind now, that thrill was pure evil, a sign of her corrupted heart. She'd watched as Linda planted the seeds: the bedwetting, the diapers, the feminization. David had resisted at first, hadn't he? But no—in the twisted version, he'd fought, and she'd insisted, relishing his slow surrender. The nursery, the dresses, the crib—all her doing, forcing him into this pathetic shell because she couldn't be content with the loving man he'd been. And the cuckolding? Oh, that was the crowning sin. She'd twisted his vulnerabilities, used the hypnosis to make him beg for it, all so she could chase her own lust. Robert's mockery echoed in her ears—"Your husband's a freak? Dump the loser"—and she saw it as truth. She'd exposed David, ridiculed him through her actions, for what? A few nights of passion? She was the monster, the one who'd stripped away his manhood, his dignity, leaving him in diapers and lace while she sought satisfaction elsewhere. Tears soaked her pillow as the self-loathing deepened. David had been wonderful—a provider, a partner, devoted in his way. And she'd broken him, reshaped him into Daisy, all because her desires were more important. Selfish. Evil. Unworthy of love. The depression wrapped tighter, distorting every memory into proof of her guilt. How could she ever face him again? When David returned from work that night he found Carolyn was still in bed. She wouldn’t really talk, just claimed to be tired and need rest. He suggested a doctor but she refused. David left the room, fully panicked now. Something was definitely wrong. What if she's traumatized? He called Linda, voice breaking. “Something's wrong with Carolyn. She's been in bed since Saturday. She won't talk. Says its nothing, she’s just sick, but I think something is seriously wrong. Please help.” Linda agreed to come over, her own remorse stirring as she hung up. On the drive, Linda's thoughts raced. Have I gone too far? David's voice—desperate, broken. Remorse crashed in: the hypnosis, the suggestions, the "experiment." She'd meant to help, but now? Guilt twisted like a knife. What if she'd destroyed them? She arrived to a house heavy with silence, ready to face the fallout. Chapter 38: Whispers in the Shadows Tuesday evening draped the house in a hush, the winter dusk filtering through the curtains like a veil. David paced the foyer, his khakis masking the faint crinkle of the diaper beneath—still dry, but the knot of anxiety in his stomach threatened to change that. The trial's final jury instructions loomed tomorrow morning, but work felt distant, irrelevant. Carolyn hadn't stirred from bed since Saturday, her date with Robert a black hole she refused to discuss. Her pale assurances of "just tired" echoed in his mind, fueling fears: Had Robert crossed a line? Or had David's own fantasies pushed her too far, breaking the woman he adored? The doorbell pierced the quiet. David opened it to Linda, her petite frame wrapped in flowing black, dark eyes etched with worry. She pulled him into a brief, steadying hug. "David. Show me to her." Upstairs, the master bedroom was a dim cocoon, curtains drawn, the air thick with stagnation. Carolyn lay curled under the duvet, auburn hair tangled, eyes fixed on some invisible point. A half-full mug of chamomile tea sat cold on the nightstand—untouched, like everything else. Linda gestured for David to wait outside. "Let me talk to her alone first. Trust me—she needs space to breathe." David nodded reluctantly, retreating to the hallway, heart pounding. He leaned against the wall, the diaper's padding a humiliating reminder of his own vulnerabilities amid the crisis. Inside, Linda sat gently on the bed's edge, her voice a soft anchor. "Carolyn, it's me. Just us. David's downstairs, worried out of his mind. Whatever's weighing on you... let it out. I'm here because I love you, and I want you happy—truly, deeply happy." Carolyn's gaze shifted, tears welling. The heaviness in her body made speaking feel like pushing through quicksand, but Linda's presence—familiar, nonjudgmental—cracked the dam. Words tumbled out in whispers, raw and fractured: the guilt over "manipulating" David into bedwetting, diapers, sissification; the spanking that now haunted her as abuse; the cuckolding that exposed him to ridicule. "I'm the villain, Linda. Selfish. Evil. I twisted him for my own needs, destroyed a good man. How can I face him? Get out of this bed? It's all my fault." Linda listened, her own remorse surging like a tide. Carolyn's memories were warped—hypnosis-fueled distortions painting her as the sole architect, ignoring David's eager consents and hidden cravings. Linda had meant to align their desires, to gift her friend satisfaction without loss, but seeing this devastation twisted the knife. Had her "help" gone too far? Ethical vows shattered for love's sake, but the fallout stared back at her. Still, she held steady, squeezing Carolyn's hand. "You're not evil. You're human—frustrated, trapped. But this guilt... it's not the full picture. We can untangle it, together. Honesty from everyone, no more secrets. That's the way forward." Carolyn nodded weakly, a sliver of relief piercing the fog. The dread eased just enough for her to sit up, sip the fresh tea Linda prepared. "Maybe... but David... he can't know how I feel yet. Not like this." "Understood," Linda murmured. "Rest now. I'll handle the next steps." Downstairs, Linda found David nursing a bourbon, his broad shoulders slumped. "She's opening up—a little. Deep guilt, twisted memories. I think I can help, but it starts with dropping the walls. Everyone's secrets out in the open." David's brow furrowed. "Secrets? Like... my sessions with you? Before all this?" Linda nodded, her tone caring but firm. "Exactly. Let me share your history with her—the appointments, the fantasies you confided. It could show her this wasn't all her doing. But only if you're ready." He stared into his glass, mind racing. Expose his pre-existing cravings? Risk Carolyn seeing him as even more pathetic? Yet... it might lift her burden. "I... I need to think. Trial's only half-day tomorrow—jury out by lunch. I could meet at your office Wednesday afternoon?" "Perfect," Linda said. "I'll meet with you and then later with her after you have decided. No promises needed now—just consider it. For her happiness... and yours." David agreed, the weight shifting but not lifting. As Linda left, he climbed the stairs, peeking in on Carolyn—now dozing fitfully. He slipped into the nursery alone, changing into a thick nighttime diaper, the ritual a small comfort amid the storm. Sleep came uneasily, dreams laced with vulnerability. The path to truth had begun—slow, shadowed, but inexorable. Chapter 39: Confessions in Solitude Wednesday morning dawned sharp and clear, the courtroom bathed in pale winter light as David finalized jury instructions with opposing counsel and the judge. The pharmaceutical case—a grueling marathon of depositions and expert battles—now rested with the jurors, deliberations set to begin after lunch. David shook hands mechanically, his mind elsewhere. He'd barely slept, the crib's rails a confining reminder of his vulnerability, the overnight diaper swollen and heavy by dawn from helpless wettings. Changing himself that morning had been a ritual of quiet shame and strange comfort, but the real weight was the decision ahead: exposing his buried fantasies to Carolyn, lifting her guilt at the cost of his own ego. If it healed her, he'd bear it—but not face-to-face. Not yet. By one, he was at Linda's office, the discreet north-side suite feeling more like a confessional than a therapy space. Linda greeted him with a warm hug, her dark eyes searching his face as they settled into the plush chairs—no pendant, no hypnosis, just the faint scent of lavender from her diffuser. "You look resolved," she said gently. "But tell me where you stand." David leaned forward, elbows on knees, the subtle bulk under his suit pants a secret anchor. A nervous twitch sent a warm spurt into the padding; he shifted, ignoring it. "I've thought about it all night. The sessions I had with you before... the confessions about the diapers, the humiliation fantasies, feeling small and inadequate. The sissification dreams, even the cuckold thoughts tied to my... shortcomings." His voice dropped, cheeks flushing. "She needs to know it predated her frustrations—that this wasn't her forcing it. But I can't tell her myself. The lies, the years of hiding behind the 'man's man' lawyer act... I deceived her by omission. If it helps pull her out of this darkness, fine. You tell her. Pave the way. Maybe later we all talk together, but not now. I can't face her reaction yet." Linda nodded, her expression a mix of empathy and her own stirring remorse. "I understand. Vulnerability like this... it's raw. I'll handle it carefully, frame it as the foundation it was. Your desires were real, David—deep-seated, not manufactured. This could show her she's not the villain her guilt paints." They talked details briefly—how to emphasize his initial cravings without overwhelming Carolyn. David stood, adjusting his tie. "I'll head back to the office, wrap up loose ends on the case. I won't be home before seven. I’ll give you time with her." "Smart," Linda agreed. "And David... this is brave. For her, for you both." He left, the drive to the firm a blur of second-guessing. But resolve held: for Carolyn's happiness, he'd strip bare—even if through a proxy. Linda arrived at the house by three, finding Carolyn in the living room, wrapped in a soft robe over pajamas, clutching a tall glass of peach iced tea. She'd managed to shower that morning, a small step, but the heaviness clung—muscles stiff, motivation a flicker rather than a flame. Still, she rose to hug her friend, eyes weary but grateful. "David's at work?" Carolyn asked, settling back on the couch. "Finishing up. He won't be home till seven—gives us space." Linda sat beside her; voice soft but direct. "Carolyn, we need to talk fully. No more shadows. Starting with... my role in all this." Carolyn's brow furrowed. "Your role?" Linda took a deep breath, guilt crashing in waves. She'd meant only to help—her best friend trapped in a loveless intimacy, desperate for satisfaction without losing security. Ethical lines crossed in love's name, but seeing Carolyn's pain now made confession inevitable. "Remember that casual tea we had, about a year before you came to me in desperation? You were venting lightly about the marriage—the routine, the fading spark—but nothing dire. I... I hypnotized you then, subtly, without your knowledge. Planted seeds to ease any budding guilt over your frustrations, to free you from repressing your sexual needs. I thought it would help you open up; realize you deserved more fulfillment." Carolyn's eyes widened. "You... what? Why?" "Because I saw the cracks forming, even if you didn't yet. You're my closest friend—I wanted you happy, not quietly suffering. That session... it might have been what led you to confide in me later, when the dissatisfaction boiled over. Without it, perhaps you never would have voiced the desperation, never sought a solution. I freed you from the guilt holding you back, and it snowballed into recognizing your marriage wasn't giving you what you needed. When you came to me that day, raw and pleading for help, I started the hypnosis again—regular sessions disguised as our chats. Suggestions to embrace control, to see the plan as salvation. I thought I was bridging your worlds, but... I overstepped, playing God with your mind. And I'm sorry—deeply." Tears pricked Carolyn's eyes, shock mingling with betrayal. "You... manipulated me? From the beginning?" Linda's voice cracked. "I did. And the guilt of it... it's eaten at me, especially seeing you like this now. But hear me: when you confided that desperate day, it was me who crafted the plan. The bedwetting trigger for David, the progression to diapers, sissification, cuckolding... I pitched it as a way to keep your life intact while getting what you needed. You agreed because it aligned with your pain, but the hypnosis smoothed the edges, made it feel right. I thought I was helping you embrace joy without destruction." "But David never wanted any of this," Carolyn whispered, voice trembling. "None of this changes the fact that I did this to him. We did this to him. Took a perfect, loving husband—a provider, devoted in every way—and twisted him into a diapered sissy baby girl just to satisfy my selfish lusts. I'm still a monster for letting it happen." Linda leaned in. "That's the other piece. Before you ever came to me—years prior—David was my patient. Work stress, bourbon reliance, weight gain eroding his confidence. In sessions, he confessed buried fantasies: diaper arousal from the warmth and helplessness, sissification thrills of frills and feminization, cuckold humiliation tied to his inadequacy—small penis, premature climaxes leaving you unsatisfied. He hid it all under ego, but it was there, real and deep." Carolyn stared, processing. The distorted memories shifted: not her villainy alone, but guided by a friend's overreach and built on his foundation. "So... the bedwetting, the diapers... it wasn't just my idea forcing him?" "No. The hypnosis triggered the wetting, amplified his surrender, but built on his foundation. And crucially—I removed all suggestions months ago, long before he begged for cuckolding. That was sincere, from his core. He craves the life: the thick padding sagging overnight, the short dresses flashing ruffles, the helpless straining while you find real men. He agreed today to let me tell you this—wants you to know, but couldn't face saying it himself yet. The deception ate at him too." Tears flowed freely now, but cleansing ones. The weight lifted—guilt dissolving as truths reframed her actions. Not evil, but human, guided by a friend who cared too much. "I still feel guilt. The spanking, exposing him... and needing more than he could give sexually." "We did go too far with the secret hypnosis on him," Linda admitted. "He deserves the full truth—how the wetting started, how we eased him into his desires. But together, when he's ready. For now, breathe. You're worthy. Loved." Carolyn nodded, a sliver of relief piercing the fog. "I... I forgive you, Linda. You were trying to help. And it did—God, the satisfaction with Robert, the power in the nursery... but knowing David wanted it too? It changes everything." By six, Carolyn was up, making tea, energy returning in waves. Linda left at seven, just as David's car pulled in. Dinner waited—simple, shared. Words were tentative, but the air lighter. Truths half-unveiled, but the path to full light clear. Chapter 40: The Quiet After the Storm David pulled into the driveway just after seven, the porch light glowing soft gold against the winter dark. His stomach churned with every worst-case scenario his mind had conjured on the drive home. Carolyn knows everything now. The secret appointments, the fantasies I buried for years, the shameful cravings I never dared voice until Linda pulled them out of me. She must feel betrayed. Tricked. Like she married a fraud. A man who pretended to be confident and dominant while secretly dreaming of diapers and dresses and watching her with real men. What if she’s disgusted? What if she’s already decided this marriage was built on a lie? What if she’s upstairs packing? He sat in the car a long moment, keys still in his hand, heart hammering. The diaper he’d worn all day—discreet under his suit—was now warm and swollen from anxious wettings he hadn’t even noticed until the drive home. Another reminder of how far he’d fallen, or how fully he’d surrendered. He took a shaky breath, forced himself out of the car, and walked to the door like a man approaching a verdict. The moment it opened; Carolyn was there. She looked... radiant. Auburn hair loose and shining, cheeks flushed with life, eyes bright in a way they hadn’t been in days. She wore a simple cream sweater and soft leggings, barefoot on the warm hardwood. Before he could speak, before he could brace for anger or distance, she stepped forward and wrapped her arms around him—tight, fierce, loving. Her body pressed against his, warm and familiar and safe. She rose on her toes and kissed him—deep, slow, passionate, the kind of kiss they hadn’t shared in years. Not Mommy kissing baby girl. Not wife tolerating husband. Just Carolyn kissing David, the man she loved. He melted into it, arms circling her, the terror in his chest dissolving under the simple truth of her embrace. She pulled back just enough to smile—soft, knowing, tender—and rested her forehead against his. No words. None needed. She took his hand and led him inside. Dinner was waiting: roasted chicken, garlic potatoes, a fresh salad—simple, comforting, made with care. They ate at the kitchen table, knees touching under it, trading small smiles and quiet glances. The silence wasn’t heavy. It was full—full of relief, full of unspoken gratitude, full of tomorrow. Afterward, she tugged him to the couch. She picked an old romantic comedy they’d watched a dozen times when they were first married, curled into his side, head on his shoulder, legs tangled with his. He draped an arm around her, breathing in the scent of her shampoo, feeling the steady rise and fall of her breathing. For two hours they didn’t speak of hypnosis or guilt or secrets. They just were. Together. Like the early days, when love was easy and the future endless. When the credits rolled, Carolyn stood and offered her hand. He took it, heart fluttering with a new kind of nervousness. She didn’t lead him to the master bedroom. She led him to the nursery. The night-light glowed soft pink, the air warm and faintly sweet with baby powder. She turned to him, eyes gentle, and began unbuttoning his shirt without a word. Dress shirt, tie, slacks—each piece folded neatly over the rocking chair. When he stood in just his soaked daytime diaper, she kissed his cheek, then fetched a fresh nighttime one from the stack: thick, lavender with tiny silver tiaras, the kind that sagged heavily when full. She laid a changing mat on the floor, guided him down, and changed him with the same loving care she always had—wipes cool, powder clouding softly, tapes snug and secure. Then she opened the dresser and held up two nighties: one baby-pink chiffon with ruffled trim, one pale mint with lace. She raised an eyebrow in silent question. He pointed to the pink; cheeks warm. She smiled—genuine, delighted—and slipped it over his head, the hem barely skimming the diaper’s waistband. White satin booties, a ribbon bow tied in his thinning curls. Finally, she buckled the soft mittens—not locking tonight, just gentle restraint—and led Daisy to the crib. The rail rose with a soft click. Carolyn leaned over, kissed the pacifier she slipped between his lips, and whispered, “Sweet dreams, my perfect girl.” Daisy lay back on the satin pillow, diaper already warming with a shy, grateful wetting, clitty stirring helplessly beneath the padding. Carolyn lingered a moment, fingers brushing his cheek, eyes shining with love and quiet certainty. They both knew. This—this life, this surrender, this love—was exactly what they had each, in their deepest hearts, always wanted. And tomorrow, when the words finally came, they would only make it stronger. Chapter 41: Victory and Vibrations The days after Linda’s visit unfolded like a slow, warm thaw. Carolyn and David talked—really talked—for the first time in years. Not hurried pillow talk or careful avoidance, but long, quiet evenings on the couch, tea for her, bourbon for him, sharing the things they’d never dared say aloud. David told her about the secret fantasies he’d carried since his twenties: the thrill of helplessness, the erotic charge of humiliation, the way a thick diaper made him feel small and safe. Carolyn listened without judgment, her hand resting on his knee, sometimes stroking the front of his diaper through his pajamas as he spoke. He confessed how much he loved her calling him pathetic or small; how her words made his tiny clitty twitch helplessly inside the padding. He admitted the darker thrill: the idea of being “forced” into things he secretly craved—anal play, plugs, pegging—because the illusion of no choice made surrender easier. He shared how much he loved the spanking she had given him. How it hurt, but felt good because he knew he had been insensitive to her needs and deserved it. He loved that she cared enough to help him be a better husband. But he also loved thinking about getting spankings. Not just for being bad. He loved the feeling of the diaper on his butt after the stinging sensation. They agreed that he would get spankings for rewards as well as punishments. When they were for play and fun, she would put a cloth diaper over his butt before his paddling so it wouldn’t hurt as much but he could enjoy the same sensations. When it was punishment, it was going to hurt. Carolyn shared too. How dominating him made her feel powerful and desired. How she’d touched herself with a dildo while he whimpered in the crib, after the spanking, the sound of his muffled cries pushing her over the edge. She told him everything about her last night with Robert—the rough way he took her, the kisses, the way he’d pressed his thick length into her, the hot explosion into her. She described it during “play time,” with Daisy on the changing table, diaper open, legs spread, the story unfolding as Carolyn teased the front of the padding. The fact that Robert knew Daisy’s darkest secret only heightened the thrill. “He mocked you,” she whispered, “called you a freak then took me.” Daisy’s hips bucked, the diaper flooding with pre-cum and pee, the humiliation delicious and terrifying. David admitted the risk excited him—the idea of exposure, the fear that someone he knew might find out. He was still terrified of real-world discovery, especially at the firm, but the fantasy made him ache. “Then we’ll give you more of that feeling, baby girl. Safe, but so very real.” They spent hours on the couch, Daisy curled against Carolyn’s side, laptop open. He sent her links to his favorite kinky stories—diapered sissies, cuckold husbands, pegging scenes—blushing as she read them aloud, voice low and teasing. “You really want this, don’t you?” she murmured, slipping a hand onto his diaper to stroke his clitty. “Yes, Mommy,” he whispered, trembling. He was in the process of providing her links to his favorite kinky stories, when he got the call. They jury was back. He was due in court in an hour. David rushed to the courthouse, heart pounding. This wasn’t just a verdict—it was freedom. A win meant a nine-figure bonus, retirement, no more hiding diapers under suits, no more pretending to be the alpha shark. He could finally live as the man—and the girl—he truly was. The courtroom was packed. The foreman stood. “We find in favor of the plaintiffs. Damages: one billion, two hundred million dollars.” Chaos erupted. Handshakes, hugs, tears from the lead plaintiff. David’s team mobbed him, backslaps and shouts of “Legend!” He grinned, ego soaring—then the judge announced the customary post-verdict juror debrief. Some jurors wanted to talk, especially to the winning side. David stepped into the jury room, still buzzing with adrenaline. They were eager, warm, congratulatory. One woman, mid-fifties, graying hair pulled back, gripped his fingers tightly. “Mr. David, I just have to say—you were so brave up there. My brother has the same… condition. To see you handle it day after day without missing a beat? Inspiring. Truly.” A younger juror nodded. “Yeah, man. Respect. Takes guts.” David’s smile froze. Condition? It clicked like ice cracking. The faint crinkle under his slacks. The occasional discreet adjustment. They’d heard. They’d known the whole trial. Heat flooded his face—mortification and exhilaration in equal measure. He managed a gracious “Thank you, that means a lot,” voice steady while his diaper warmed with a fresh, involuntary wetting. As he walked out of the courthouse, the winter air sharp on his cheeks, a giddy thought looped: They knew. And the world didn’t end. They admired me. He now wondered if everyone at work knew as well. Driving home, the shock gave way to a strange, electric relief. One of his darkest secrets was out—at least to twelve strangers—and nothing had collapsed. The humiliation was real, but so was the thrill. He couldn’t wait to tell Carolyn. That evening, the nursery glowed pink. Carolyn had prepared a “special treat.” Daisy stripped, lay on the changing table, heart racing. From the drawer came a sleek black silicone butt plug, small but unmistakably curved, with a flared base and a remote in Carolyn’s hand. “Mommy…?” “Shh, good girl. This is for my brilliant lawyer who just won a billion dollars.” She gloved up, lubed the toy, and eased it in slowly. Daisy’s breath hitched at the unfamiliar stretch, the fullness pressing against her prostate. Carolyn taped on a thick lavender nighttime diaper over the plug, then pocketed the remote. All evening it buzzed—low, teasing hums while they watched TV, sudden sharp pulses that made Daisy squirm and whimper on the couch, diaper tenting helplessly. Carolyn watched with wicked delight, her own arousal building at the sight of her girl writhing in controlled pleasure. Friday he walked into the firm and announced retirement—effective once the inevitable appeal and settlement wrapped up. The partners raised glasses (bourbon for everyone but him; he was in a thick daytime diaper under his jeans and didn’t trust his bladder with alcohol anymore). “Legend walking away at the top,” they toasted. He grinned, secretly thrilled: no more legend. Just Daisy, full-time, secure forever. They gave him the next month off—“Take care of yourself, champ. You’ve earned it.” He planned a trip with Carolyn—somewhere warm, private, where the diapers could be thicker, the play louder, the secrets safely shared and some experimentation could begin. Just the two of them. For now. Chapter 42: Shadows Cleared The week after the verdict passed in a haze of newfound freedom. David dove into wrapping up loose ends at the firm—memos, handoffs, the occasional call about appeal strategies—but his heart wasn’t in it. Retirement loomed like a promise, the pharma windfall ensuring they’d never worry about money again. Evenings blurred into intimate confessions: David admitting how the jurors’ knowledge of his diapers had secretly thrilled him, how the exposure—real, risky—made his clitty strain every time he thought about it. Carolyn shared her own rush, teasing him during changes until he begged for mercy. By mid-week, they turned to planning the trip. Over breakfast—David in khakis over a discreet daytime diaper, Carolyn sipping peach iced tea—they spread maps on the kitchen table. “A few week in the mountains,” Carolyn said, tracing a route to a secluded cabin in the Rockies. “Far from the city, the courthouse, anyone who knows us. Just you and me… and whatever adventures we chase.” David’s cheeks warmed. “I’ve been thinking about packing. Not just the usual—some cute cross-dressing outfits. Nothing babyish. Short sundresses, maybe a skirt and blouse. Feminine, but… obvious.” Carolyn’s eyes lit with interest. “Tell me more.” He hesitated, then plunged in. “There’s this fantasy—golfing in a woman’s outfit. A pleated tennis skirt, polo top, maybe knee socks. Waddling up to the tee, everyone staring at the man in drag. The humiliation… God, it thrills me. But I’m not ready for that yet. Maybe just a few outings en femme. A walk in the woods or through a quiet town. An obvious guy in a cute dress, holding your hand. Everyone knowing I’m… this.” She reached across the table, squeezing his hand. “We can start small. An evening stroll, you in something pretty. And if it feels right… maybe hit a bar or club. Scout for someone real. A man who could give me what I need, while you watch from the shadows.” David’s breath hitched, diaper tenting at the thought. “Yes. Risky, but… thrilling. As long as it’s safe. No one from our world.” Everything felt perfect—open, electric, alive. But Carolyn carried a shadow. Linda had been calling daily, her voice gentle but insistent: “He needs the full truth, Carolyn. About the hypnosis, the plan. You can’t build on half-secrets forever.” Carolyn resisted at first—why dredge up pain when they were so happy?—but Linda’s caring persistence wore her down. “For his sake. He forgave the rest; he’ll forgive this. And you’ll be free.” Finally, over lunch Friday, Carolyn agreed. She texted Linda: Come over Sunday afternoon. We’ll tell him. That evening, as they cuddled on the couch—David in a light pink nightie over his diaper, Carolyn in silk pajamas—she broached it casually. “Linda’s coming by Sunday. Patio, if the weather holds. We… need to talk. All of us.” David’s brow furrowed, but he nodded, sensing the weight. “About…?” “Everything. Loose ends. Trust me—it’ll be good.” Sunday arrived mild for mid-December, the sun warming the patio enough for sweaters. Linda arrived at three, her flowing black dress swaying as she hugged them both. They settled around the wrought-iron table: Linda with a glass of crisp white wine, David with a tumbler of bourbon over ice, Carolyn sipping tall iced tea from a frosted glass. Small talk faded quickly. Linda set her glass down, eyes meeting David’s with that calm, amused authority. “We’re here because there’s one more truth to share. Carolyn and I… we started this journey for you, but not entirely honestly.” Carolyn took a deep breath, hand finding David’s under the table. “Before the bedwetting, before the diapers… I went to Linda, desperate. Our sex life was… empty. You came quick, your size left me aching and pretending. I loved you—the security, the life—but I needed more. I didn’t want a divorce and I couldn’t cheat without risking everything.” David’s grip tightened, but he stayed silent, listening. Linda leaned in. “I suggested hypnosis—for you. To trigger bedwetting, make you small and dependent. To push your buried desires to the surface: the diapers, the sissification, the helplessness. We planted the seeds subtly, over dinners and visits. The first wet night? Us. The urge to suggest protection? Us. We amplified what was already there—your fantasies from our old sessions—but we started the cascade without telling you.” Carolyn’s voice trembled. “I agreed because I was selfish and frustrated. But Linda crafted it, thinking it would align us—give me satisfaction, give you the surrender you craved deep down. We eased you into it, step by step.” David sat frozen; bourbon forgotten. Shock hit first—like a punch to the gut. Betrayed? By his wife? By Linda, who he’d trusted with his secrets years ago? Emotions churned: anger flickering at the manipulation, humiliation burning hotter as he realized his “natural” descent into Daisy had been engineered. The first soaked sheets, the doctor’s visits, the shame that had hooked him so deeply… all orchestrated. His face flushed, hand pulling back slightly. “You… made me wet the bed? Pushed me into diapers like some puppet? God, the humiliation I felt—raw, real—and it was all a setup?” Tears welled in Carolyn’s eyes. “We did. And I’m sorry. So sorry. But—” Linda cut in gently. “It built on your truths, David. The cravings were yours. We just… unlocked the door.” He stared at the table, mind reeling. But beneath the storm, something steadied him. The life now—the nursery, the diapers sagging warm overnight, the frills and helplessness, Carolyn’s glowing satisfaction—it was everything he’d ever wanted, even if he hadn’t known how to ask. Without their push, would he have stayed buried under ego and bourbon? Trapped in a marriage dying from his own inadequacies? A slow breath. The anger ebbed, replaced by a strange gratitude. “All’s well that ends well,” he said finally, voice rough but sincere. “Yeah, it stings—the deception. But look at us now. I’m happier than I’ve ever been. As Daisy, as your sissy… it’s freedom. You gave me that. Both of you. If Linda hadn’t made it happen, I’d still be pretending, failing you both. I forgive you. Hell, I thank you.” Carolyn sobbed in relief, pulling him into a hug. Linda smiled, tears in her own eyes, raising her glass. “To truths. And the happiness they bring.” They clinked—wine, bourbon, iced tea—and the last shadow lifted. The mountains waited, full of promise. Chapter 43: Peaks of Desire The cabin sat high in the Colorado Rockies, a sun-drenched A-frame with wide decks overlooking pine forests and a shimmering alpine lake. They arrived in early August, the air warm and sweet with wildflowers and pine sap. No snow, no skiers—just endless blue sky, hiking trails, and the lazy hum of summer insects. Perfect for the kind of exposure David had dreamed of. They unpacked with quiet excitement. David laid out his summer wardrobe: a soft floral sundress in sky blue that skimmed mid-thigh, a white pleated tennis skirt with a matching polo, sheer knee-high socks, and strappy sandals. Feminine, summery, and unmistakably male underneath—no wig or heavy makeup, just light gloss and a blush of excitement. Carolyn helped him choose, her own outfits breezy and sexy: linen shorts and halter tops, sundresses that showed off her tanned legs, everything that made her look effortlessly desirable. Their first outing was a late-afternoon walk along a quiet lakeside path. Daisy stepped out in the sundress, the breeze lifting the hem to flash the padded diaper beneath. The diaper was thick but discreet—white with pastel butterflies—and it crinkled softly with every step. Carolyn held her hand, radiant in a white sundress and wide-brimmed hat. “You’re gorgeous, princess. Imagine if someone saw—an obvious man in a pretty dress, waddling for his Mommy.” They passed a few hikers. A young couple smiled politely, a lone fisherman glanced up from the dock and did a double-take. Daisy’s skin prickled with warmth, her clitty twitching helplessly against the padding. The stares were electric. Back at the cabin, Carolyn rewarded her with slow, teasing strokes over the diaper until Daisy sobbed and came in helpless spurts. Emboldened, they ventured into the small mountain town nearby—cafés, galleries, a handful of bars catering to summer tourists. Daisy chose the tennis skirt and polo, heart pounding as they strolled the sunny main street. Heads turned: a barista’s eyes widened, a group of tourists whispered, a woman in a sundress smiled with amused curiosity. “They know,” Daisy breathed, cheeks flaming. “I’m a man in a skirt. Pathetic. Exposed.” Carolyn squeezed her hand. “And it thrills you, doesn’t it? My brave girl.” It did. The humiliation fed a dizzying arousal, diaper tenting shamelessly. That night Carolyn pegged Daisy for the first time, the slim strap-on sliding in while she whispered about “real men” who could stretch her properly. But Carolyn craved more than toys. “Let’s try the bars,” she suggested over iced tea on the deck. “You watch from a distance, like a secret admirer. See if I can… attract someone.” Daisy nodded eagerly, the cuckold fire roaring. That evening, at a lively lakeside bar—open-air patio, string lights, live guitar—Carolyn entered alone, stunning in a fitted red sundress that hugged her curves. Daisy slipped in ten minutes later, perched at a corner table in her skirt ensemble, sipping club soda to hide the waddle. She watched, diaper warming with jealous spurts, as men approached: a fit hiker with a charming smile, a local contractor with sun-kissed arms. Carolyn flirted lightly, laughing at jokes, touching arms—but nothing clicked. The next night, success. A tall, confident stranger—mid-forties, broad-shouldered, visiting from Denver—bought her a drink (iced tea for her, whiskey for him). Conversation flowed: work (he was in finance), travel, subtle innuendo. Daisy squirmed from her spot; the thrill razor-sharp. When Carolyn glanced her way—eyes locking for a split second, wicked and loving—Daisy nearly came untouched. An hour later, Carolyn leaned in. “Your place?” His hotel was just across the street. She texted Daisy: Stay here, baby. Mommy’s getting what she needs. Tell you everything later. Daisy waited, hips rocking subtly against the padded seat, mind reeling with images: Carolyn spread wide, moaning for a real cock, while her sissy waited in a tennis skirt and plastic. Upstairs in the stranger’s room—simple, king bed, balcony overlooking the lake—Carolyn felt the rush. No names exchanged beyond firsts (she gave a fake). He was confident, hands strong as he peeled off her sundress, lips claiming hers. The sex was raw, fulfilling: he lifted her effortlessly, pounding deep against the wall, then on the bed, flipping her to take her from behind. She came twice—hard, shattering—screaming into the pillow, body alive in ways David never could. The thrill of anonymity, the risk of a one-night fling in a mountain town, heightened every thrust. He finished with a growl, collapsing beside her, murmuring how incredible she was. She dressed quickly after, a quick kiss goodbye, heart racing as she slipped out. Back at the bar, Daisy waited, eyes wide and desperate. In the cabin, Carolyn recounted every detail: his size (“Thick, baby—stretched me perfectly”), his stamina (“Pounded me until I begged”), the way he made her feel desired, powerful. Daisy lay in the bed, nightie hiked, Carolyn’s hand stroking over the soaked diaper. “He took what you can’t give, princess. While you waited like the good cuck you are.” Daisy exploded with a sob, spurts soaking the gel, collapsing into Carolyn’s arms. They fell asleep tangled—her in silk, Daisy in chiffon and padding—bodies warm, love deeper than ever. But morning brought unease for Carolyn. Over iced tea on the deck, watching the sun rise over the lake, she frowned. “Last night was… amazing. Physically. But the lying? Pretending I’m single, no strings? It felt hollow. I want more than quick fucks with strangers. Something honest. Real connection, even if it’s just for us.” David—back in shorts and a diaper—nodded thoughtfully. “I get it. In my years browsing forums, reading stories… I learned about bulls. Real ones, not porn fantasies. Guys who enjoy the dynamic: low commitment, but with boundaries. They get the thrill of being desired, the power exchange, without emotional baggage. Some build respect with the couple—even friendship. Motivated by feeling chosen, providing pleasure, avoiding drama. We could find one together. A bull for us, not just you. Someone who knows the score, enhances our life without secrets.” Carolyn’s eyes lit. “Honest from the start. No pretending. And you… exposed, humiliated, but safe.” They agreed: when they got home, the search began. A bull to complete their world. The mountains had given them clarity. Now, the real adventure waited. Chapter 44: The Search Begins Back from the mountains, the cabin's sun-soaked memories lingered like a warm afterglow. David dove into finalizing the pharma case—appeals looming, but settlement talks already buzzing—while Carolyn savored their deepening intimacy. Evenings blurred into confessions: David admitting how the jurors' knowledge still thrilled him, how the risk of real exposure made every diaper change electric. Carolyn shared her growing dominance, the way commanding him—paddling his bare bottom or buzzing a plug while he squirmed—ignited her like nothing else. One night in the nursery, Daisy lay on the changing table, fresh diaper taped snug, nightie ruffled. Carolyn's hand lingered on the front, teasing. "Tell Mommy another secret, princess. Something you've never said out loud." Daisy's cheeks burned. "I... I want more than watching. When you have your bull... make me please him. Orally. Suck him off while you watch. Prepare him for you." Carolyn's eyes darkened with heat. "God, baby—that's hot. Watching my husband on his knees, diaper crinkling, servicing the man who's about to fuck me? The power... the humiliation for you, the dominance for me. Yes. We'd make it happen." Daisy whimpered, clitty straining. "And... not just hear about it. Be there. As Daisy—diapered, dressed, maybe tied to a chair. Forced to watch him take you. Or... present you to him. Spread your legs, beg him to fuck you better than I ever could." Carolyn leaned down, kissing the pacifier-gagged mouth. "Perfect. The stories are thrilling, but seeing your face—tears in your eyes, diaper tenting pathetically—while he pounds me? That's the ultimate exchange. My power, your surrender." The decision crystallized: time for a bull. Not random hookups, but a real one—for them as a couple. They started together, laptops open over iced tea (for her) and bourbon (for him). David shared what he'd gleaned from years of online lurking: cuckold communities emphasized consent, communication, boundaries. Bulls varied—some dominant alphas seeking control, others casual players enjoying the taboo without strings. Key: find one motivated by mutual respect, not conquest. They joined discreet sites: FetLife for kink networks, BiCupid for open-minded matches, OkFun's cuckold section for targeted searches. Reddit subs like r/cuckold and r/cuckoldpersonals offered forums for posts. They crafted a joint profile: "Loving couple seeking respectful bull for long-term dynamic. Hotwife craves real satisfaction; cuck sissy thrives on humiliation and service. Honesty first—no games." Responses flooded in. They vetted together, chatting via apps, video calls to gauge vibes. First potential: Alex, 38, muscular gym rat from the city. His messages oozed dominance—"I'll own her while you cry in your diapers"—but ignored their questions about boundaries. On video, he dismissed David's role: "Husbands are just props." Mismatch: too aggressive, no respect for the couple's unity. They passed. Next: Tom, 45, divorced exec. Polite, experienced, but his fantasy leaned emotional—"I want to be the third in your love story." He pushed for dates with Carolyn alone, minimizing David. Red flag: seeking attachment they didn't want. "We need low-drama," David said. Blocked. A third: Ryan, 32, bi-curious artist. Intrigued by the sissy element, but uncomfortable with diapers—"That's too weird for me." His energy mismatched their core kink. Polite no. Frustration built, but the process bonded them—laughing over bad profiles, role-playing rejections. "We're picky for a reason," Carolyn said. "He has to fit us." Then, Marcus. His profile on FetLife stood out: 42, tall, athletic build, finance consultant. "Experienced bull seeking respectful, ongoing dynamic with secure couples. Enjoy power exchange, humiliation play, but boundaries sacred. Bi-friendly; love involving the cuck in creative ways." Photos showed a handsome Black man—strong jaw, easy smile, confident without arrogance. They messaged: honest about their setup—diapers, sissification, Daisy's service fantasies. Marcus replied thoughtfully: "Sounds aligned. I get off on the thrill of being chosen, making her scream while he watches (or helps). No possession—just enhancement. Happy to chat limits first." The video call sealed it. Marcus appeared polished—button-down shirt, warm baritone. He asked questions: "What does exposure mean for you, David? Carolyn, how do you see my role in your dominance?" No red flags—confident, empathetic, independent. He shared motivations: low-attachment validation, enjoying the taboo without drama. "I'm straight, but open to cuck service if it fits the scene. Turns me on knowing he's prepping me for her." Marcus leaned back in his chair after the video call ended, replaying the conversation in his mind. David wasn't the fragile pushover he'd braced for—sharp, accomplished, with a quiet vulnerability that commanded respect. And Carolyn... radiant, in control, her dominance subtle but electric. This dynamic felt right: no red flags, just a secure couple seeking enhancement, not rescue. As a bull, he thrived on that—being chosen for the thrill, providing pleasure without strings or drama. Boundaries clear, chemistry simmering. Yeah, he thought, this could be one of the good ones. Low commitment, high reward—exactly what kept him in the game. Chemistry sparked. They agreed: initial meet at a neutral café downtown. "See if we click in person," Marcus said. "No pressure." As the call ended, Carolyn pulled David close. "He feels right. For us." Daisy nodded, diaper warming with anticipation. The search was over. The real dynamic—present, exposed, humiliating—about to begin. Chapter 45: Dinner with the Bull The lounge was dimly lit and intimate—a quiet downtown spot with leather booths, soft jazz humming from hidden speakers, and a bar glowing amber. David and Carolyn arrived early, scanning the room. No Marcus yet. They slipped into the bar area to wait. “Bourbon, neat,” David ordered, his voice carrying that courtroom steadiness even as nerves fluttered beneath. Carolyn smiled at the bartender. “Peach iced tea for me, please.” Marcus appeared moments later: tall, broad-shouldered, dark skin warm under the low lights, dressed in a crisp charcoal shirt that hugged his frame without trying too hard. His stride was easy, confident. They recognized him instantly and waved him over. He approached with a genuine smile, handshake firm and warm. “David. Good to meet you in person.” “Likewise,” David replied, grip matching—lawyer to professional, man to man. Marcus turned to Carolyn; eyes appreciative but respectful. He leaned in for a light kiss on the cheek. “Carolyn… wow. You’re even more stunning in person.” She flushed, a playful spark in her eyes. “Flatterer. But thank you. You clean up nicely yourself.” He ordered an IPA for himself and, without asking, another peach iced tea for Carolyn—remembering her preference from their chats. As they waited for a table, conversation flowed easily. David shared the pharma trial victory and his impending full retirement. Marcus talked about his finance consulting work, the two bonding over shared gripes about corporate red tape and long hours. Golf surfaced—both casual players—and they traded favorite courses and swing tips. Movies: action thrillers and classic Westerns. Music: David’s classic rock met Marcus’s R&B and hip-hop seamlessly. We could be friends if we met on a job site, David thought, a strange warmth mixing with the undercurrent of excitement. But he knows everything. While we’re debating drivers versus irons, he knows I wear diapers under this suit, dress in frills at home, and want him to take my wife while I watch. Marcus sipped his beer, genuinely enjoying the exchange. As the conversation flowed—golf tips turning to market trends—Marcus felt the pieces click. David was solid: charismatic, successful, no insecurity masking as aggression. Easy to respect, even like. Carolyn's hand on his thigh sent sparks, her confidence pulling him in without desperation. This was the kind of dynamic he sought: mutual trust, clear boundaries, the erotic charge of power exchange minus the mess. He enjoyed being the catalyst—feeling desired, amplifying their bond—not owning it. No drama, just validation and fun. Glancing at David's subtle flush, he knew: this fits. Green lights all around. And Carolyn… she was radiant. Confident, quick to laugh, her auburn hair catching the light, body language open and inviting. The chemistry crackled—subtle glances, lingering smiles. He felt the pull: desire, yes, but also intrigue at the dynamic she’d described. This could be a great. The hostess called their table—a cozy corner booth. Carolyn paused, then slid in beside Marcus with a mischievous smile. “I’ll sit here tonight.” David blinked, a flicker of ego sting, but he nodded. “Of course.” He took the opposite bench, alone. The arrangement screamed it: couple plus one. Carolyn leaned into Marcus naturally, her hand brushing his arm, head tilting toward him as they talked. David’s stomach twisted—public slight, deliberate tease—but heat bloomed low, diaper warming with a shy spurt, clitty stirring at the casual dominance. Carolyn leaned toward Marcus during appetizers, her voice carrying just enough for the nearby waiter to overhear. "Darling, tell me more about your day—while my husband here fetches the bread basket." Marcus complied with a knowing smile, but David flushed as the waiter paused mid-step, eyes flicking to him—the "husband" alone across the table. Carolyn's casual command treated David like an errand boy, the public demotion stinging sharp. He stood, retrieving the basket from the sideboard, the subtle crinkle under his slacks amplifying the shame. The waiter smirked subtly as he passed, murmuring, "Anything else for... the table?" David's cheeks grew scarlet, arousal betraying him with a spurt into the padding. She's orchestrating this—making me the servant in front of strangers. Heat rose in David’s cheeks, humiliation flooding hot and sharp. He knows now. Thinks I’m the odd one out, the third wheel. The public sting hit like fire, but his diaper tented slightly under the table, arousal betraying him. Marcus caught his eye—a flicker of knowing amusement, respectful but dominant. The meal unfolded in delicious tension. Appetizers—bruschetta, calamari—arrived, and conversation stayed easy on the surface: work stories, travel plans. But Carolyn’s hand rested on Marcus’s thigh under the table, her laughs leaning into him. She fed him a bite of her salad, giggling as he accepted it. The waiter’s knowing glances as he refilled drinks amplified everything for David—the public display, the casual claim. Marcus relaxed into it, alpha ease radiating. Sitting with another man’s wife draped over him, the husband watching quietly… it fed the thrill without arrogance. He liked them both. Carolyn was electric, power surging. Every touch, every corrective “my husband” to the waiter, soaked her panties. They’re both mine tonight, she thought. David humiliated; Marcus intrigued. Perfect stepping stone. Dessert—tiramisu shared three ways—passed in warm politeness. Outside on the sidewalk, farewells: Marcus shook David’s hand firmly. “Really good meeting you both.” Then he pulled Carolyn close for a deep, lingering kiss—right there under the streetlight, valet watching curiously. David stood aside, face aflame, the public claim searing. Humiliation crested, but so did the rush: Everyone sees. They know. In the car home, silence at first, then Carolyn’s hand on his knee. “You were perfect tonight, baby.” At home, the shift was swift. Carolyn led him to the nursery, stripped the suit, taped on a thick princess diaper—lavender with tiaras. Daisy emerged in a frilly nightie, bells jingling softly. But Carolyn was on fire, soaked from the evening’s power play. She tugged Daisy to the master bed—her domain—and pushed her down. “Make Mommy cum,” she commanded, hiking her dress, no panties beneath. Daisy dove in eagerly, tongue lapping with desperate devotion. The privilege—rare, earned—filled her with profound joy: finally pleasing Carolyn sexually, after years of failure as David. Slow circles on her clit, delving deeper, sucking gently then firmly as Carolyn’s breaths quickened. Hands gripped thighs, pulling closer, tongue probing every fold until Carolyn arched, fingers tangling in curls, crying out in shattering release. Daisy pulled back, face glistening, tears of happy accomplishment pricking her eyes. Carolyn kissed her forehead. “Good girl.” When Daisy finished, Carolyn led her to the nursery, helped her into the crib, and locked the crib rail in place, goodnight whispered. Daisy drifted off replaying the night: humiliation thrilling, chemistry undeniable. Marcus fit. The story surged forward—one giant step closer to everything they craved. Chapter 46: Building the Bridge Marcus had always been the steady one. Raised in a tight-knit family in Atlanta, he'd learned early that real strength wasn't loud or aggressive—it was reliable. A football scholarship in college honed his discipline, but a knee injury shifted his path to finance, where he climbed steadily: analyst to manager to independent consultant, building a life of quiet success. Divorced once, amicably—no kids, no bitterness—the split stemmed from mismatched desires; she'd craved routine vanilla, while he'd discovered his kink through discreet online forums. The cuckold world appealed not for dominance games, but for the clarity: low emotional stakes, high mutual thrill. He'd been a bull for three couples over the years—always with clear rules, ending cleanly when dynamics shifted. He loved the validation of being chosen, the erotic rush of providing what a husband couldn't, the power exchange that amplified a couple's bond without claiming it. No possession, no drama—just respect, pleasure, and the freedom to walk away if it didn't fit. David and Carolyn intrigued him from the start: a secure marriage with layers of vulnerability and trust. David wasn't fragile—just a man craving release from his alpha mask. Carolyn's dominance was subtle, magnetic. This could be rewarding: feeling desired, catalyzing their happiness, without the mess of entanglements. Green lights all the way. The arrangement came together seamlessly. Back home after the lounge dinner, Carolyn and David debriefed in the master bed—him in a fresh diaper and short nightie, her in silk. The evening's public tease still hummed between them. "Marcus texted," Carolyn said, phone glowing. "He's in. Wants to move forward." David's clitty stirred against the padding. "Me too. He... fits." They discussed dynamics openly: Daisy's presence eventually—tied, watching, servicing. Carolyn admitted nerves. "For the first time... I want it just me and him. Ease in. I'm not ready for you there yet—too intense. But soon. I promise." David nodded, a mix of jealousy and arousal. "I get it. Tell me everything after. Every detail." She kissed him. "Deal." Carolyn messaged Marcus the arrangements. Her mind: quick hotel meet; straight to sex—satisfy the itch. His reply: No rush. Dinner and dancing first. Let anticipation build. Treat you like you deserve. Her heart fluttered. A real date—romantic, respectful. His idea. Perfect. She shared with David. "He wants dinner, dancing. No sex first night. And... he suggested you come along. Watch us. Then I come home with you." David's eyes widened, diaper warming. "Thoughtful. Respectful of us." They agreed: a step forward, safe. The night arrived. A sleek downtown restaurant—white tablecloths, candlelight—then a nearby club with live band and sultry rhythm. David arrived first, suited sharply, bourbon in hand at the bar. Marcus and Carolyn entered together: him in tailored dark shirt and slacks, her in a slinky black dress that clung to every curve, heels accentuating her legs. She glowed on his arm. They joined David at a corner table. Conversation flowed like the lounge—golf swings, market trends—but charged now. Marcus's hand on Carolyn's lower back, her laughs leaning into him. David watched, ego prickling deliciously, diaper discreet but tenting under the table. Dinner: shared plates, wine for Marcus, iced tea for Carolyn, bourbon for David. Marcus fed her a bite of dessert, eyes locked. Chemistry sizzled—his deep voice drawing her in, her touches lingering. Carolyn leaned toward Marcus; voice playful but pointed. "Pass the bread basket to my husband, please?" Marcus complied with a knowing smile, sliding it across. The small command—treating him like her assistant in front of David—sent a fresh wave of heat through her. David flushed, accepting it silently, the subtle power shift amplifying his arousal. Then the club: dim lights, pulsing bass, bodies swaying under colored spots. David nursed a drink at a shadowed high-top, eyes locked on the floor. Marcus led Carolyn out first on a slow song—his large hand splayed possessively across the small of her back, pulling her flush against him. She melted into his chest, auburn hair brushing his shoulder, her arms looping around his neck. He guided her with effortless strength, hips swaying in perfect sync, the heat of his body seeping through her thin dress. His thigh slipped between hers as they turned, pressing just enough to make her breath catch, a subtle grind that sent sparks low in her belly. She tilted her head up, lips brushing his ear. "You move so well." He smiled down, voice a low rumble. "You feel incredible against me." His hand drifted lower, thumb tracing the curve of her hip, pulling her tighter so she felt the hard line of him against her thigh—deliberate, teasing. The song shifted faster—R&B groove, heavy beat. Marcus spun her out, then reeled her back in, hands sliding to her hips. She arched into him, back to his chest, grinding slowly as his palms guided her rhythm. The curve of her ass nestled against his growing hardness; he didn't hide it, letting her feel every inch, hips rolling in time with the music. Carolyn's pulse raced, nipples peaking under silk, wetness building as his fingers traced teasing circles on her waist, dipping just under the hem of her dress. He dipped her low, strong arm supporting, lips hovering near hers without closing—anticipation electric, breath mingling hot and close. David watched every sway, every press, diaper soaking with helpless arousal. Jealousy twisted sharp, but the thrill overpowered: She's dancing like that for him. Not me. No sex—just build. At midnight, Marcus walked them out, arm around Carolyn's waist, a final squeeze before releasing her to David. In the car home, her hand on David's thigh. "Soon," she whispered. "But tonight... perfect." At home, nursery ritual: diaper check (soaked), change, nightie. Then master bed—Carolyn guiding Daisy's head between her thighs. "Taste how wet he made me." Daisy lapped eagerly, bringing her to shuddering release. Marcus had proven thoughtful, patient. The right bull—for them. The bridge was built. Next: crossing it. Chapter 47: The First Night The arrangement came together seamlessly, a mix of anticipation and careful planning that thrilled all three of them. Marcus had suggested a full evening: dinner at an upscale French bistro downtown, then a night at a luxury hotel overlooking the city skyline. "Let's make it memorable," he'd texted Carolyn. "Build the heat slowly." She loved his thoughtfulness—no rush to the physical, even though her body ached for it after months of buildup. David was looped in from the start. Over iced tea one afternoon, Carolyn laid it out: "Saturday night. Dinner, then the hotel. I won't be home until Sunday morning." He nodded, a flicker of jealousy in his eyes, but his diaper warmed with the familiar rush. "I agree. Tell me everything after. Every detail." To prepare, Carolyn decided on a lingerie shopping trip—a ritual to heighten the tease. Friday afternoon, she took Daisy with her to a discreet boutique in the upscale district, the kind with velvet curtains and soft lighting. Daisy waddled beside her in khakis over a thick daytime diaper, face flushed as Carolyn browsed lace and silk. "Help Mommy pick something for Marcus," she cooed, holding up a sheer black babydoll with garters. "Something that makes him hard just looking." Daisy's clitty strained pathetically. "That one... it's sexy. He'll... he'll love it." Carolyn found what he was pointing to immediately: a white lace teddy, almost completely sheer, delicate garter straps dangling like invitations. She held it up against herself. “What do you think?” David’s mouth went dry. “It’s… incredible. You’ll look unreal.” A salesgirl—early twenties, bright smile, name tag “Kayla”—approached. “That set is stunning. There’s a matching garter belt and sheer stockings if you want the full look.” Carolyn’s eyes lit up. “Yes, please!” Kayla beamed. “Big occasion?” Carolyn glanced sideways at David, a playful glint in her eye. “A special night out and a stay at a luxury hotel afterwards.” Kayla turned to him with an automatic smile. “You’re a lucky man.” Carolyn’s voice was sweet as honey. “Oh, no—that’s my husband. My lover is picking me up tomorrow night.” The air left David’s lungs. Heat flooded his face; the diaper felt suddenly huge under his suit. Kayla’s eyes flicked to him, curious, a little amused, then back to Carolyn with open admiration. “Wow. He’s so sweet and supportive. That’s rare.” “He really is,” Carolyn agreed, stroking David’s arm like he was a well-trained pet. Kayla rang up the set—teddy, garter, stockings, even a tiny white thong—chatting happily about how gorgeous Carolyn would look. David stood mute, cheeks burning, clitty straining helplessly against the sodden padding. In the car on the way home he stared out the window, mind spinning. Carolyn leaned in to Daisy: "Imagine him peeling this off me while you're home in your crib, in your wet diapers. " Daisy whimpered, a spurt soaking the gel. "Yes, Mommy." Saturday evening, Carolyn prepared in the master bath—hair in loose waves, lips painted deep red, the lingerie hidden under a sleek black cocktail dress. David, already as Daisy in a short pink romper over her diaper, helped zip her up, hands trembling. "You look incredible," Daisy whispered. "For him." Carolyn kissed her forehead. "Have fun tonight, princess. Mommy won't be home till morning." Daisy nodded, bells jingling. "Yes, Mommy. Have... have fun." Marcus arrived in his SUV, sharp in a tailored suit. He kissed Carolyn deeply at the door—Daisy watching from the hall, heart pounding—then drove off into the night. At the bistro, candlelight flickered over white linen. Marcus pulled out her chair, ordered wine for himself and iced tea for her without asking. Conversation flowed: his latest consulting project, her thoughts on a new book club read. But under it, tension built—his hand brushing hers, eyes tracing her neckline. "You’re glowing tonight," he murmured. "You make me feel that way," she replied, pulse quickening. After dessert—crème Brulé shared, spoons lingering— they headed to the hotel. The suite was opulent: king bed with silk sheets, city lights twinkling through floor-to-ceiling windows, a bottle of chilled iced tea waiting beside champagne. Marcus dimmed the lights, pulled her close. "I've wanted this since our first call." Their kiss started slow—lips soft, exploring—then deepened, his hands roaming her back, unzipping the dress. It pooled at her feet, revealing the white lingerie. His breath caught. "God, Carolyn... you're perfection." She tugged at his shirt, buttons giving way to reveal toned chest and abs. They tumbled to the bed, his mouth on her neck, trailing down to lace-covered breasts. He peeled the bra away, sucking nipples to hard peaks, her moans filling the room. Fingers dipped under the thong, finding her soaked, circling her clit with expert pressure. "Yes... Marcus..." She arched, guiding his head lower. He obliged, tongue delving deep, lapping with hungry precision—slow flicks, then sucking, building her relentlessly. She came hard, thighs clamping his head, crying out as waves crashed. He rose, shedding pants—his cock thick, veined, twice David's length—hard and ready. She stroked him, marveling at the heat, the girth. "I need you inside me." He entered slowly, stretching her deliciously, inch by inch until buried deep. She gasped, nails digging into his back. He thrust steadily—deep, rhythmic—flipping positions: her on top, riding with rolling hips; then from behind, pounding as she clutched sheets. Orgasms rolled through her—three, four—each shattering, his growls possessive. Finally, he came with a roar, spilling hot inside her. They collapsed, tangled and sweaty, his arms around her. "Incredible," he whispered. She smiled, sated. "More than." Back home, Daisy paced the nursery, romper unzipped, diaper massively swollen from hours of anxious wetting. Mommy is with him now. Dinner done, hotel room... his cock inside her, making her scream like I never could. The jealousy burned, but so did the need. Crib rail up, paci in, she grabbed a satin pillow, straddling it in the dim pink light. Hips rocked desperately—wet gel squishing, clitty grinding through layers. Imagining: Marcus thrusting deep, Carolyn's moans, his grunts of possession. "Yes... fuck her... better than me..." She came with a muffled sob, spurts soaking the diaper further, collapsing spent and tear-streaked. Morning would bring stories. For now, surrender. Chapter48: Maid for the Evening The anticipation built like a slow-burning fire in the days leading up to Marcus's first full visit to the house. Carolyn orchestrated every detail with wicked delight, turning the evening into a deliberate showcase of Daisy's surrender. She'd ordered the maid outfit online—a glossy black satin dress with an impossibly short skirt, white lace ruffles trimming the hem and puffed sleeves, a crisp apron tied in a big bow at the back, and a frilly white petticoat that forced the skirt to flare out dramatically. Sheer black stockings with lace tops, garter clips, and patent Mary Janes completed the look. No panties, of course—just the thick, crinkly nighttime diaper printed with tiny pink tiaras, its bulk pushing the petticoat even higher, ensuring every curtsey or bend flashed the padded bottom. "Look at you," Carolyn cooed during the fitting, circling Daisy with a predatory smile. "My little sissy maid. Marcus is going to love seeing what a pathetic servant I've turned my big strong lawyer husband into. Waddling around in frills and plastic while he gets ready to fuck your wife properly." Daisy's face scorched crimson, clitty twitching uselessly against the gel. "Y-yes, Mommy... it's so humiliating." "That's the point, baby girl. Tonight, you serve. No sitting at the table like a real person. Just fetching, pouring, standing in the corner like the useless cuck maid you are." Saturday evening arrived. Carolyn prepared upstairs—emerald lace lingerie under a sheer robe, hair in soft waves, makeup sultry. Daisy waited downstairs in the full outfit, petticoat rustling with every nervous shift, diaper already warm from anxious leaks. The doorbell rang precisely at seven. Daisy minced to the door, heels clicking, skirt bouncing to reveal ruffled diaper edges. She opened it to Marcus—imposing in a fitted shirt and slacks, eyes immediately dropping to take in the outfit. A slow, appreciative grin spread across his face. "Well... hello, Daisy. You look exactly like the perfect little maid." Daisy's voice came out high and trembling. "G-good evening, Sir Marcus. Please... come in." She curtseyed deeply, skirt flaring high enough to expose the bulging diaper fully—tiaras gleaming under the foyer light. Marcus's gaze lingered on the padded bottom, amusement deepening. "Adorable. And practical, I see. Lead the way, girl." Blushing furiously, Daisy turned—waddle pronounced—and guided him to the living room. "May I... take your coat, Sir? And prepare a drink?" "Bourbon on the rocks," he said, handing over his jacket. He settled on the couch, watching as she prepared it at the bar cart—bending to reach ice, skirt riding up to flash the sagging seat of her diaper. She returned with the glass, curtseying again. "Your drink, Sir." "Thank you, Daisy." He accepted it, then patted the couch beside him. "Stand there a minute. Let me get a good look at Carolyn's handiwork." Daisy obeyed, mortified as he appraised her openly. "Turn around." She did, slowly, petticoat swishing. "Bend a little—like you're picking something up." The skirt lifted completely, exposing the thick, crinkly diaper. Marcus chuckled low. "Pathetic little thing, isn't it? All padded up while a real man visits your wife. Does it make that tiny clitty excited, knowing I'm here to do what you can't?" "Y-yes, Sir," Daisy whispered, voice breaking, a fresh spurt warming the gel. "Good girl." Carolyn descended then—robe open, lace clinging to curves. She kissed Marcus deeply. "Like my maid?" "Very much," he murmured, hand sliding to her ass. Dinner was candlelit intimacy for two: seared salmon, roasted vegetables, wine for Marcus, iced tea for Carolyn. Daisy served meticulously—plating, pouring, refilling—standing silently in the corner when idle, hands clasped over apron. They ignored her mostly, laughing and touching, but Carolyn couldn't resist occasional barbs. "Daisy, more wine for Sir Marcus. And stop shifting like that—everyone can hear your diaper crinkling. So, embarrassing for a grown man." Marcus smirked. "She's well-trained. Cute how she waddles." Daisy burned, arousal throbbing helplessly. After dessert—shared bites fed between kisses—Carolyn stood. "Bedroom?" Marcus rose, pulling her close. "Absolutely." Daisy cleared the table in a haze as they ascended, door left ajar. Sounds drifted down: zipper, gasps, bed creaking. Marcus's deep voice: "Spread for me, beautiful." Carolyn's moans—raw, desperate—as he entered, thrusting powerfully. "Yes... God, you're so big... harder!" The rhythm built—headboard thumping, her cries peaking in multiple orgasms, his grunts culminating in release. Daisy retreated to the nursery, crib rail up, but ears straining to every muffled sound. Marcus left around eleven—kissing Carolyn at the door, promising return. "Next time... longer." Carolyn found Daisy in the crib, nightie hiked, pillow clutched desperately between thighs. "Ready for stories, baby?" Daisy nodded frantically. Carolyn climbed in, pulling her close. "He was incredible—thick, relentless. Fucked me in ways you never could. Listen while you hump." As details poured—his tongue making her squirt, pounding from behind until she screamed, filling her deep—Daisy ground against the pillow, wet diaper squishing obscenely. Carolyn watched; eyes gleaming. "Look at you—humping like a desperate little girl while Mommy tells you how a real man took her. Pathetic, but so perfect." Daisy sobbed into release, spurts soaking further, collapsing spent. Carolyn held her tight. "Good maid. This is just the beginning." Deeper layers awaited. Marcus was in—for good. A few days after Marcus's first full home visit—Daisy in maid outfit, serving silently—Carolyn met Linda for iced tea on her patio. "He's perfect," Carolyn said, glowing. "Respectful, dominant without cruelty. And Daisy... serving them dinner, standing in the corner—it was intoxicating." Linda listened, caring intent shining. "You're building something beautiful." Chapter 49: Witness to Ecstasy In the days following Marcus's home visit, Carolyn's confidence bloomed. The power of commanding Daisy as maid while Marcus claimed her had unlocked something deeper—a desire to share the full spectacle. "It's time," she told Daisy one evening in the nursery, taping a fresh diaper snug. "Next time Marcus comes... you watch. Everything." Daisy's clitty throbbed at the thought. "Yes, Mommy... please." To prepare, Carolyn browsed online discreetly, ordering a pack of Rearz Princess Pink diapers—thick, ultra-absorbent with a glossy pink backing printed with crowns, unicorns, and hearts. "Something special for my baby girl," she said when they arrived. "Pink and pretty, just like you'll be while watching Mommy get what she needs." Saturday came. Carolyn invited Linda for dinner first—keeping her oldest friend in the loop, sharing every thrilling detail over tea. "Marcus is perfect," she'd confided. "And tonight... Daisy watches." Daisy was dressed early: an incredibly frilly baby doll outfit in pale pink chiffon, like something for a very young girl—puffed short sleeves, ribbon bows, layers of ruffles barely covering the bulging Rearz diaper. The pink plastic crinkled loudly with every movement, hearts and crowns visible at the leg bands. A matching bonnet tied under her chin, satin mittens (unlocked for now), and the penis-shaped paci dangled from a ribbon around her neck. The doorbell rang at six. Daisy waddled to answer, skirt bouncing to flash the diaper's waistband. Marcus stood there, bottle of bourbon in hand, eyes widening at the sight. "Hello again, Daisy. You look... even sweeter than last time." Daisy curtseyed, hem flipping high to expose the pink padding fully. "W-welcome, Sir Marcus. Please come in." He stepped inside, gaze lingering on the frilly ensemble and obvious diaper. "Adorable. And those diapers... very princess-like. Fitting for a sissy like you." Blush burning, Daisy took his coat. "May I... make you a drink, Sir?" "Bourbon neat, thanks." As she prepared it—bending to reach the bottle, skirt riding up to show the full printed seat—another ring. Daisy minced back, opening to Linda. Linda's eyes sparkled with affectionate amusement. "Oh, Daisy... you look precious. Hello, sweetheart." Daisy curtseyed again. "Hello, Miss Linda. Please come in." Linda handed over a bottle of sparkling water. "First time meeting Marcus properly? Exciting night ahead." They gathered in the living room—Marcus and Linda shaking hands warmly, chatting easily about the city while Daisy served drinks: bourbon for Marcus, wine for Linda, iced tea for Carolyn (who descended moments later in a flowing red dress that screamed seduction). Dinner was intimate: roasted lamb, herbed potatoes, salad—Daisy serving in her frilly outfit, standing attentively, refilling glasses. Conversation flowed—Linda sharing hypnosis insights (respectfully vague), Marcus on finance trends, Carolyn glowing as center. Daisy escaped teasing this time, but the outfit spoke volumes: frills and diaper crinkling as silent humiliation. Linda bid goodnight after coffee. "Have fun, you three. Call if you need me." Upstairs in the master bedroom—soft lighting, king bed dominant—Marcus and Carolyn kissed hungrily while Daisy stood aside, trembling. "Time to get you ready," Carolyn said, leading Daisy to a sturdy wooden chair beside the bed. Leather cuffs—fuzzy-lined for comfort—snapped around wrists and ankles. Ropes attached them to the chair arms and legs, a deliberate production: Carolyn tightening each knot slowly, Marcus watching with intrigued approval. Daisy tested the binds—secure, no escape, but no pain. Heart racing: Can't move. Can't touch. Just watch. "One more surprise," Carolyn purred, producing a new gift: a realistic penis-shaped gag, veined silicone, strap harness. "Open wide, baby girl." Daisy's eyes widened, but she obeyed. Carolyn inserted it firmly—filling her mouth, tip nudging throat—buckling the straps tight. "There. Now pay attention, Daisy. Watch how a real man satisfies a woman. Something your tiny clitty could never do." Muffled moan escaped—Daisy's only sound now. Marcus pulled Carolyn close, hands roaming her dress, unzipping slowly. Kisses deepened—lips parting, tongues dancing—as he peeled fabric away, revealing lace bra and thong. His mouth trailed down her neck, sucking collarbone, hands cupping breasts, thumbs circling nipples through lace until they peaked hard. She gasped, arching, fingers tangling in his hair as he knelt, kissing stomach, thighs. "You're so wet already," he growled, inhaling her scent. Daisy watched, bound and gagged: God, he's worshipping her. Touching places, I never could. Her body responds to him—moans real, not faked like with me. Humiliation twisted with envy, diaper tenting painfully, clitty leaking pre-cum into the pink gel. Can't speak, can't beg—just witness. Marcus stood, shedding shirt—toned chest rippling—then pants, cock springing free: thick, veined, erect. Carolyn stroked it reverently. "I need you." He laid her back, tongue delving between thighs—lapping folds, sucking clit with expert rhythm. She writhed, hips bucking. "Yes... Marcus... don't stop..." Daisy's thoughts raced: He's making her cum with his mouth. She's screaming for him. So powerful... I'm just a spectator, diapered and gagged like a pathetic toy. Her first orgasm hit—body convulsing, cries echoing. Marcus rose, positioning—rubbing tip against her wetness. He thrust in slowly, stretching her, her moans peaking as he filled completely. Daisy's eyes locked: There it is. Him inside her. Taking what's mine. Tears pricked—jealousy searing—but arousal throbbed, diaper soaked. They built—thrusts deep, rhythmic—flipping to her on top, riding hard; then doggy, pounding relentlessly. Orgasms rolled through her—loud, shattering—until Marcus growled, spilling inside with a final thrust. They collapsed, panting. Marcus kissed her tenderly. "Incredible, as always." Daisy muffled a sob—overwhelmed, aching. Marcus dressed, said goodnight with a kiss for Carolyn. "Next time... more." Released from binds and gag, Daisy trembled. Carolyn led her to the nursery, lowering the crib rail. "Stories now, baby. But show Mommy how excited you are." Daisy nodded; nightie hiked. Carolyn fetched the oversized stuffed pink unicorn, placing it between Daisy's legs. "Hump for me. Slow—let me watch my sissy get off to her cuckolding." Daisy straddled it, grinding desperately—wet diaper squishing, clitty rubbing through gel. Carolyn sat beside, hand on back. "That's it... hump while I tell you how he filled me. Bigger than you, better than you. My perfect little watcher." Release hit—sobs muffled, spurts soaking further. Carolyn held her after, whispering love. The circle tightened. Happiness deeper than ever. Chapter 50: The Nursery Unveiled The fantasy had simmered between them for weeks—David's deepest confession, whispered in the nursery one night: permanent denial. No more penis-in-vagina sex with Carolyn, ever. His tiny clitty locked away from her forever, reserved only for diapered frustration. She'd agreed eagerly, the power intoxicating. "Tonight," she decided. "With Marcus here to witness. Make it official." Marcus arrived promptly, bottle of wine in hand, greeted by Daisy in a short lavender nightie over her diaper—crinkling softly, no full outfit tonight to keep focus on the ritual. They settled in the living room—Marcus on the couch, Carolyn beside him, Daisy kneeling at their feet on a soft rug. Carolyn began, voice firm but loving. "We've reached a new milestone. David wants—needs—permanent denial. No more sex with me. Ever. His little clitty will never enter me again." Marcus leaned forward; eyes serious. "This is big. Permanent means no going back. You sure?" Daisy nodded, face flushing. "Yes, Sir. I... I can't satisfy her. Never could." Carolyn smiled wickedly. "Tell him, baby. Recite your inadequacies. Beg him properly." Daisy's voice trembled. "Sir Marcus... my penis is too small—barely three inches hard. I cum in seconds, leaving Mommy frustrated and faking. I'm inadequate... pathetic. Please... satisfy my wife for me. Fuck her like she deserves. Take my place permanently. I relinquish all rights to her body." Marcus gave pauses—multiple chances. "Last out, David. This is forever. No reversal. You're giving me exclusive access." Tears pricked Daisy's eyes, but arousal throbbed. "I want it, Sir. Permanent. Please... be her man." Carolyn beamed. "Sealed." To celebrate, Carolyn led Marcus upstairs—to the nursery door. "Time you see her special room." She opened it: soft merciless pink glow, adult-sized locking crib with glossy white rails, changing table stocked with powders and wipes, stacks of thick diapers including the Rearz Princess Pink with crowns and unicorns, dressers of frilly nighties and outfits, rocking chair, mobile spinning lazily. Marcus took it in, impressed. "This is... thorough. Perfect for her." Carolyn grinned. "And to help you adjust, baby—we got you a girlfriend." Daisy blinked, confused. Carolyn produced a cheap party-prank blow-up doll—gaudy plastic, exaggerated features, half-inflated. "Only fair," Carolyn teased. "You watched us—we should watch you. Make love to her. Show Marcus how you try." A blush tinged Daisy’s ears. Diaper tenting, she pulled down the front of her diaper and mounted the doll awkwardly—humping the plastic form, tiny clitty entering the dolls’ plastic hole. Carolyn narrated: "Look at him, Marcus—humping a plastic doll because real women are too good for his tiny little thing." Marcus chuckled. "Pathetic, man. But committed." Mid-thrust—a loud hiss. The doll deflated rapidly, air leaking as it crumpled beneath. Carolyn burst laughing. "Oh God—she committed suicide! Couldn't bear your pathetic pecker. Dolly chose death over letting you cum inside her." Marcus roared. Daisy sobbed humiliation, arousal peaking. "Now the pillow," Carolyn commanded. "Hump in front of us. Finish like the sissy you are." Daisy obeyed—pulling the front of her diaper up over her tiny clitty, straddling, grinding desperately while they watched, teasing relentlessly: "Plastic preferred popping over you... real men get me, you get pillows..." Release hit—shuddering, spurting into soaked gel. Next was the nightly change. Marcus watched as Carolyn untaped the used diaper, wiped, powdered lavishly, taped a fresh Rearz Princess Pink snug. Daisy picked her sleep outfit: baby-pink chiffon nightie, short and ruffled. Finally, Marcus's gift: a baby monitor set. "Transmitter for your bedroom," he explained to Carolyn. "Receiver for the nursery. So, Daisy hears everything when we're... busy." "Perfect," Carolyn purred. The crib rail was raised; Daisy was all tucked in for the night—the receiver on the dresser. With the lights out in the nursery, Daisy could hear the moans, creaks, Carolyn's cries, Marcus's growls filtering through the monitor. Daisy lay in pink glow of the nightlight, diaper warm, listening as sleep claimed her—humiliated but utterly fulfilled. The life begged for was permanent now. Chapter 50: Bedroom Surprises David's birthday—his 48th—dawned with a quiet thrill that permeated the house. Over the past months, the dynamic had solidified: Marcus a regular presence, dinners and dances evolving into passionate nights in the master bedroom, Daisy always listening from the crib via the monitor, her diapered helplessness a constant. Retirement had freed David fully—no more suits hiding padding, just endless days as Daisy when Carolyn commanded. The hair had grown out, now long enough for styles beyond bows, and Carolyn had hinted at a "big surprise" for weeks. That evening, Carolyn prepared Daisy in the nursery with meticulous care. "My birthday girl needs to look extra special," she cooed, seating her at the vanity. She brushed the thinning but lengthened curls into high pigtails, tying them with oversized pink ribbons that dangled like childish flags. Makeup was overdone: rosy cheeks blended to clownish circles, shimmering pink eyeshadow, glossy lips in bubblegum hue. The outfit screamed exaggerated sissy: a hot-pink satin romper with puffed shorts barely covering the diaper, white lace ruffles everywhere—collar, cuffs, hems—tiny bells sewn into the seams that jingled with every twitch. Sheer thigh-high stockings with bows at the tops, glossy Mary Janes on feet. The Rearz Princess Pink diaper beneath was massively thick, printed with glittering crowns, hearts, and unicorns, its plastic backing crinkling obscenely. Daisy stared at her reflection—over-the-top, ridiculous, utterly emasculated. "Mommy... it's so... much." Carolyn kissed her forehead. "Perfect for your surprise. Now come—Marcus is waiting." Downstairs in the master bedroom, Marcus lounged on the bed in slacks and shirt, bourbon in hand. His eyes lit as Daisy entered, pigtails bouncing. "Well, damn... look at you, Daisy. You look so pretty—like a little doll all dressed up for playtime." Daisy curtseyed, bells tinkling, face burning. "Th-thank you, Sir." Carolyn guided her to the chair beside the bed—no binds, no gag. "Sit, baby. Birthday girls get to watch tonight." Daisy obeyed, diaper squishing under her, clitty already stirring at the promise. Marcus set his glass down, smiling at Carolyn. "I'm ready for that blow-job you promised." Daisy's eyes widened in shock. Blow-job? Mommy hates that—never once, not even for me. She's going to suck her first cock... right here? The thought sent a jolt through her: jealousy at Marcus getting what she'd never given David, but arousal at witnessing Carolyn's "first." Carolyn's lips curved mischievously. "Alright." But instead of kneeling before Marcus, she stood, took Daisy's hand, and led her to the bed's edge. "I promised Marcus a blow-job, baby... so you need to do a good job for him." Daisy's world spun. Me? Sucking him? The shock hit like ice water—heart pounding, stomach twisting in raw fear. No... I can't... but the fantasy crashed in: forced to serve, mouth full of the cock that pleased Mommy. Humiliation burned, clitty betraying with a helpless twitch. Emotions warred: terror at the unknown taste, the stretch, the ultimate emasculation; shame at how badly she wanted to be "made" to do it; excitement bubbling under, making her diaper warm with a shy spurt. This is it—the line I never crossed. But Mommy's commanding... and I crave the surrender. "M-Mommy?" Daisy stammered, voice small and trembling. "I... I don't know if I can..." Carolyn's grip tightened on her hand, eyes locking with a mix of dominance and encouragement. "Oh, you can, baby girl. And you will. You've begged for this in your whispers—fluffing my bull, tasting a real man. Now's your chance. On your knees, Daisy. Open that pretty mouth and show Sir how grateful you are that he fucks Mommy like you never could." Daisy hesitated, knees weak, mind reeling. The room felt smaller, Marcus's presence looming. What if it's gross? What if I choke? But deeper: What if I love it? Become the cocksucking sissy forever? Carolyn tugged gently but insistently, guiding her down. "Don't make me ask again, princess. It's your birthday—time to unwrap your gift." Tears pricked Daisy's eyes—fear, humiliation, desire blurring—but she knelt, pigtails framing her face, bells jingling softly as she settled between Marcus's legs. Marcus unzipped slowly, his thick cock springing free—veined, semi-hard, already intimidating. "You heard Mommy, girl. Make it good for me." Daisy leaned in hesitantly, the musky scent hitting first—earthy, masculine, strangely intoxicating. Her lips parted, tongue flicking tentatively at the tip. Salty pre-cum bloomed on her taste buds—warm, slick, not as bad as feared. She took more, mouth stretching around the girth, sucking softly at first, exploring the velvety hardness. The fullness was invasive, jaw aching already, but the rhythm built: bobbing slowly, tongue swirling the underside, cheeks hollowing as she sucked harder. Gagging slightly on deeper pushes, tears streaming, but persisting—up and down, slurping wetly, the act degrading yet thrilling, clitty leaking steadily into the diaper. Carolyn knelt beside her, whispering taunts with glee. "Look at my little cocksucker—lips stretched around a real man's dick. You've got more cock in your mouth right now than I've ever had in my life. Once a cocksucker, always a cocksucker, Daisy. Can't undo it now—you're marked forever as the sissy who sucks off her wife's bull." The words stung like fire, humiliation peaking, but arousal surged—Daisy moaning muffled around the shaft, bobbing faster, throat relaxing to take more. "Greedy girl," Carolyn laughed. "Slurping like you can't get enough. Bet that makes your tiny clitty drip in your princess diaper, huh? Pathetic—on your knees sucking the man who fucks me, while you hump pillows in you wet diapers later." Marcus groaned; hand gentle on her pigtail. "Good... deeper, sissy." He thrust lightly, tip nudging throat. Daisy pushed limits—gagging, eyes watering—but sucked relentlessly until Marcus swelled, pulsing. "Swallow it all, girl." Orgasm erupted: hot, thick ropes flooding her mouth. Salty, viscous—overwhelming volume forcing gulps, throat working desperately to take every drop, no spill, swallowing like a starving thing. Pulling back gasping, face smeared with saliva and tears, lips swollen. Carolyn clapped delightedly. "What a good cum-eating sissy cuckold! Gobbled it all down like your favorite treat. Must love the taste—didn't waste a single drop. You're a natural cocksucker, baby. More in your future, I bet." Marcus chuckled, pulling Daisy up gently. "You did amazing, girl. Come here." Tender cuddling followed—Daisy sandwiched between them on the bed, Carolyn stroking pigtails, Marcus's arm around both. "Proud of you," Carolyn whispered, kissing tears away. "My brave birthday girl." Daisy sniffled, afterglow mixing shame and bliss. I did it... sucked a man off. Swallowed. I can't take it back. But... it felt right, natural. Marcus recovered, pulling Carolyn atop him. Daisy watched from the bed's edge: kisses deepening—lips crashing, tongues entwining hungrily. Hands explored—him kneading her breasts, pinching nipples to gasps; her grinding against his hardening cock, nails raking his chest. He flipped her, entering smoothly—thick shaft sliding in, stretching her visibly, her moan raw and ecstatic. Thrusts built: deep, rhythmic, bed creaking. She rode him wildly—hips rolling, breasts bouncing, head thrown back in bliss; doggy style—ass rippling with powerful impacts, her cries peaking; missionary—legs wrapped tight, nails digging as he pounded relentlessly. Orgasms tore through her—body quaking, screaming his name, juices soaking sheets—until Marcus growled, spilling deep inside with shuddering release. Daisy's thoughts swirled: There—him inside her, thrusting like I never could. Stretching, filling, making her cum real. Jealousy aches... but so hot. My place is to be here watching, to be denied, to be diapered. Panting, Carolyn beckoned. "Clean up, baby." Daisy crawled over—first Marcus's cock: licking tentatively, tasting mingled fluids—salty cum, Carolyn's tangy sweetness. She cleaned thoroughly, sucking softly, tongue swirling to lap every trace. Then between Carolyn's legs: tongue delving into creamy folds, lapping the hot creampie—musky, thick, cum oozing as she sucked and swallowed, face buried in wetness. Humiliatingly delicious, clitty throbbing untouched. Chapter 51: Bedtime Reflections When Daisy finished, they all went to the nursery. Daisy's diaper was untaped (soaked beyond capacity). Carolyn took out the lube and prepared the vibrating plug that was Daisy's favorite and inserted it gently into her. A fresh Princess Pink diaper was put on and taped into place. Daisy was then dressed in a short frilly baby-pink chiffon, barely skimming waistband. The locking mittens were put onto Daisy's hands. The wrist and ankle cuffs were strapped into place. When Daisy climbed into the crib her diaper crinkled. Daisy laid on her back and her wrist and ankle cuffs were secured to the rails of the crib with the ropes. Finally, the Penis shaped pacifier was put in her mouth and strapped in with a ribbon—filling Daisy's mouth, tip nudging her throat, inescapable for the night. The railing was raised and locked. "Goodnight, baby," Carolyn whispered, kissing forehead. "Sweet dreams." As Carolyn and Marcus left for the master bedroom for the night, Carolyn took the remote for the vibrating butt plug and turned it on low. She could hear the low hum as they closed the door to the nursery. Daisy lay in pink glow, bound and buzzing, tears of joy streaking: Mommy's done everything—unlocked my secrets, built this life of surrender. From egotistical lawyer to diapered sissy cuckold... wonderful, perfect. Tonight was a whirlwind—the shock of the blow-job command, the internal battle of fear and desire, the invasive fullness in my mouth, the salty flood I swallowed so eagerly. I crossed that line, became the cocksucker forever... and I loved it. The cleanup too—tasting them mingled, lapping the creampie like a starving pet. Humiliating, but so right. What does Mommy have planned next? More service? Deeper denials? The unknown thrills me. As sounds echoed in the nursery, Daisy could hear the passion between his wife and the real man coming over the baby monitor—moans, gasps, rhythmic creaks, Carolyn's raw cries of "Yes... harder..."—Daisy drifted off to sleep, utterly content. This was the life begged for. This was the life she'd never thought she could have and now would never leave. Epilogue: Secrets in Bloom The weekly sessions between Carolyn and Linda had faded into fond memory, replaced by occasional texts and spontaneous lunches. But this particular Wednesday at 2:00 p.m., they met at Carolyn's favorite park—a serene expanse of winding paths, blooming flowerbeds, and a gentle fountain at the trail's end. Linda arrived in her flowing black dress, spotting Carolyn on a bench overlooking the lake. They embraced warmly. "You look radiant," Linda said, pulling back with a smile. "As do you," Carolyn replied. "It's been too long." They walked the shaded path, small talk flowing—weather, a new restaurant downtown—until Carolyn steered gently deeper. "I can't thank you enough for everything, Linda. You've changed my life—our lives—in ways I never imagined." She paused, gazing at the trees. "I've learned so much. That love isn't finite. I love David more deeply now than ever—seeing him as Daisy, vulnerable and joyful, has only strengthened it. And Marcus... I love him too, in a different way. Fierce, passionate. One doesn't diminish the other." Linda nodded; eyes soft. "I'm so happy for you. For all of you." Carolyn smiled. "And jealousy? It doesn't have to rule. When Daisy sucked Marcus... I thought I'd feel possessive, but no. Just joy—watching two people I love sharing something intimate, consensual. Beautiful." They reached a secluded bench, and Carolyn sat, motioning Linda beside her. She took her friend's hands. "Most importantly, I've learned that true love means openness. No bottling feelings. David and I... we're honest now, raw and real. It's brought us unimaginable happiness." A pause. "You kept telling us that—be open, honest. And it worked." Linda squeezed her hands. "I'm glad." Carolyn's gaze deepened. "You know you can tell me anything, right? No secrets between us." Linda nodded, a flicker of nervousness crossing her face. "Then... tell me yours." Carolyn's voice was gentle but steady. "Back before David was your patient. That first subtle hypnosis over tea. You said it was to ease budding guilt, free me from repressing needs. Help me realize I deserved fulfillment." Linda swallowed. "I remember." "But there was more. A secret reason." Carolyn's eyes searched hers. "You weren't just fixing my marriage. It was... personal, wasn't it? All those caring intentions—the hypnosis, the plan to make us happy—you believed it would help, but it was for me, wasn't it?" Linda's composure cracked, looking suddenly vulnerable—like a child caught in a harmless lie. Tears welled. Carolyn pulled her into a hug. "It's okay. Let it out. Tell me." Linda's voice broke. "I love you." Carolyn held tighter. "I love you too. But... more than friends?" The words tumbled. "I'm in love with you. Have been... since college. Watching you suffer in silence, trapped with David... it broke me. I couldn't stand it. The hypnosis, the plan—it started selfishly. To free you, yes, but hoping... maybe you'd see me. Need me. Love me back. I truly believed it would bring you lasting happiness—that's why I pushed so hard, crossing every line. For you." Silence hung, birdsong filling it. Carolyn pulled back, cupping Linda's face. "Oh, Linda... my beautiful, caring friend. You've been there through everything—guiding, protecting, loving quietly with that fierce intent to make me happy." Tears streamed down Linda's cheeks. They stood, walking to the fountain's edge—water sparkling in sunlight. Carolyn faced her, hands on Linda's waist. "I see you now. Truly." She leaned in, lips meeting softly—tender at first, then deepening, tongues exploring with years of unspoken want. Desire ignited, gentle but profound. Pulling apart breathlessly, Carolyn whispered, "I'm in love with you too." Linda's eyes shone—relief, joy. Carolyn smiled. "A short time ago, I felt trapped—sexless, obligated. Now? Three loves: David, my devoted sissy; Marcus, my passionate bull; and you—my heart's quiet constant. With openness, honesty... we make it work. All of us." They embraced by the fountain, future blooming wide. Love, unbound, had won. The Making of a Sissy Baby Cuckold - Final.pdf
- 1 reply
-
- 4
-
-
- erotic
- fiction
-
(and 36 more)
Tagged with:
- erotic
- fiction
- dark
- bdsm
- transformation
- taboo
- adult
- domination
- submission
- submissive
- femdom
- diapers
- cuckold
- cuckolding
- sissy
- humiliaton
- exposure
- feminization
- marriage
- power exchange
- hypnosis
- sexual content
- sexual humiliation
- creampie
- crib
- nursery
- psychological manipulation
- bedwetting
- diaper lover
- spanking f/m
- pegging
- plugs
- plugged
- forcedbi
- forced bi
- voyeurism
- teasing
- crossdressing
-
Hello. I’ll start with my name, Brandon. I just want some advice and understanding. my partner m (27) and I m (22) have been in a gay relationship for 4 years now. We co-parent his biological son together and want more in the future. When we got together and over our relationship I’ve asked and pushed for him to share about his most intimately parts with me as I do with him I’ve always given him everything he’s asked of me I’ve never judged and I’ve understood everything about him constantly. a year into our relationship we took a big step to move out of area together into a house and start a real life together. Since we have lived here we have argued lots about my trust to him and visa Versa and I’ve always kind of felt somethings been off and I’ve literally believed that he would be the only person in my life that wouldn’t lie to me. on Saturday I found a diaper boys profile called josey96 and a tumblr account all with pictures and videos of his play time and other bits.. his location was set as local on diaper boys and his tumblr was written in a way that wants to meet with people. I’ve now tried to understand him I’ve put boundaries in place allowing him to do what he needs to do while I try and soften the blow. My mind feels like if this was something he spoke about when we got together or even anytime between that I have not had to come across it accidentally and end up in shock then I wouldn’t be so uncomfortable with it but where it’s based on this lie I just feel like everything he’s said has been a lie. He tells me he’s not met people and he tells me he’s not done anything worh any other people in the whole 4 years we’ve been together but he’s posted vids and pics every few months and sometimes days and weeks for the last 5 years. Can someone help me understand all this?
-
Does anyone here live as a sissy baby cuckold? Do you want to tell us about how it started?
-
Well, I have a new story started, a friend of cool content helping me edit, and a ton of nervous energy. I always get a little nervous when I start a new story, and worse so, when I post the first few chapters! Please watch for the Point of View IDs (--- Becca ---) littered throughout the story. It's a first person work told from several points of view. I think this may be a long one so enjoy and let me know what you think! ----------------------------------------------------------- Birch House Chapter 1 --- Becca --- “I’m not parking this far away from the house everyday.” My husband grumbled. “Yeah, this is kinda retarded. If we buy it, you won’t have to.” I agreed flipping my bangs out of my face the jewelry on my wrist clinking together like a wind chime. “We’ll just drive up there and park next time, but we’ll need to get some gravel brought in and make a real lane out of this grownup driveway. We should do a circular drive and make sure Ann’s got a place to park too.” He said calculating volumes in his head. “We’re not pissing off the Finn’s Trent. We’ll park down here by the road until they tell us it’s ok, or we buy it.” I asserted. “All right… All right Babe.” Trent caved not wanting to upset the sellers either. That’s how Trent was though, always planning ahead. He could see things coming before they got to us, and still find creative ways to bitch about it even if he already had a plan to deal with it. I loved trent with all my heart, but his attitude could be an acquired taste. I had been with Trent since I was a little girl… first as a friend and eventually his wife. Trent’s offered me his hand getting out of my car, and I paused to pull my black lace covered skirt back down where it belonged. Stockings are great and all, but the silky lining of my skirt let it ride way up when I got in the car. I may like showing some cleavage and making sure my tattoos are visible, but I didn’t intend to flash my lack of panties to the world. I love teasing Trent, so normally that’s a good thing, but our realtor sure didn’t need to see my lady fur! Regardless of Trent’s attitude problems, I loved him. Not to mention the short walk up the tree lined lane was beautiful this time of year and was doing wonders for both our attitudes. The little forest guarded the edge of the property from view blocking us from our potential neighbors. In fact, it felt like the house was carved out of a small but wild grove of trees. Even the chill in the air because of fall’s cooler temperatures couldn’t mess with my mood. “God I hope we can close this deal. This place fucking rocks.” I squealed clinging to Trent. My hopes rose with each step closer to my would-be-house. My head swiveled admiring the small forest and the well kept yard. It was the fifth time we’d wandered up that path, and I was starting to feel like I was coming home. I wanted that house so badly, but the amount of debt we were talking about was Hella scary for me. Owning a home was going to be an exciting new chapter in our lives. I mean, I was still driving the car my parents bought me when I turned sixteen for fuck’s sake! The only credit I had was a hundred dollar Victoria Secret card! Big spender I was not. Mom would be so proud of me. I wish she were here to see this with me. Drunk ass old fool! I thought sparing an unkind thought for my dad too. Ashley, our realtor, had shown us this property all five times we’d visited. Each time she looked amazing, and she didn’t let me down that day either dressed in a brilliant blue business suit that day. I remember it matched her lovely eyes. The realtor greeted us with bright smiles hugging me tightly like a long lost friend. I admired her for her sense of style even if it was different than mine, but I’ll be damned if she didn’t catch me staring. “The house is nice too. My firm has sold this house a total of six times you know! This will be the second time that I have found Birch House a new family. She’s just an amazing place.” Ashley said over her shoulder as we toured the house taking my attention from her legs. “I still don’t understand the turnover.” Trent implied blind to her appeal. “This house, at its age, in this condition, and at this price point has always been a great deal. She’s always been a great first house or last house depending on your stage of life. Remember, six times over that many years isn’t so alarming.” She said sticking to her tour confidently dismissing his question handling Trents skepticism like a boss. “It looks like everything in here is new!” Trent said getting his first at the like-new old house. I realized she’d given this tour a million times before, and it added a layer of nervous energy to the walkthrough. Her cleavage was distracting me more than Trent, and I bet she dressed up to show off her assets as a tactic too. I shook my head clearing out the unproductive thoughts feeling a bit like a dude at Hooters hoping the waitress really meant all those kind words. I was ready to make an offer, well… mostly. We had our co-signer and our funding all worked out. We were ready to finalize on our latest offer, assuming the property had been improved like the Finn’s had promised. I shook off my uncertainty causing the chain on my ear piercings to make dainty metallic noises that only I could hear. Personally, I thought Trent had a good point, but maybe I was biased? Why would the house have had so many owners? It’s was nerve wracking going into debt like that, and I just needed to be sure. It felt terrifying and exciting at the same time like that time I went bungee jumping. Making a bad deal and going into over a hundred thousand dollars worth of debt was dragging my excitement to the shitter. The house seemed big enough to me... maybe it was just rich-lady-reasons? I sure as hell didn’t any of those! I wasn’t certain why it was only a good house to start or end one’s life, but I bet she had a speech prepared for the question so I just let it go. There were like a million rooms at Birch House. I bet a big family could live here for a good long time, decades even. The listing had it at about eighty years old. Three, maybe four owners seemed reasonable to me, not four before our realtor’s firm and six more after! Ashley skimmed her notes flipping through the thick stack of paper on her clipboard. The current owners had met us here the second time she showed us the place. I couldn’t believe it had only been a few weeks ago. Trent and I had discussed the things we’d like to do to the house to really make it our own after our first visit. It was going to be hard to complete our list since we didn’t have a lot of cash left for improvements. When the Finn’s had asked, it had seemed like a strange question. A question answered cautiously because we were eager to make a good impression. So, we literally gave them a copy of our list hoping for the best. They’d talked to us for quite a while when we met them. The Finn’s stayed so long it began to feel like a job interview! They’d asked what improvements could be made that would help us. Things they could do that would make the house more attractive and let us pay for the improvements over the term of the loan. The Finns freakin awesome! They were clearly still deeply in love with each other and Birch House. That was no small accomplishment after having been married over ten years. We guessed they were in their mid to late thirties at the time. They said they were only moving because Mr. Finn had been asked to head up an office for his company in another state. They said that they absolutely loved the house and honestly hated to leave it. That made more sense to us. It seemed like a good reason to move, but we still felt uneasy after the interview. We had the sense that the whole deal was too good to be true. We still had two months on Trent’s lease and weren’t too worried about finding a place to rent, so we had the time to be patient about our house hunting. His landlord even offered to go monthly on our rent at the end of the lease, so we had that option too. He wasn’t thrilled when we put in our notice. “Good tenants like you kids are hard to find.” Carl had told us reading our letter of intent. Good? Ha! We were the best tenants! We Phillip’s are handy. We’d tackled small home improvement tasks and simply ask off a bit of rent when our landlord was happy with the results. The first few times we’d had to get any upgrades approved, but it didn’t take long to make a good impression. The bathroom tile and marble countertops had made him so happy he’d paid for the supplies and given us rent for free that month. We weren’t afraid of a little elbow grease. In fact, we enjoyed working to make a house a home. Trent’s mom called it nesting. Unfortunately, money was going to be short for a while. It always is after you buy your first home. His mother had warned us, and it turned out she was clairvoyant about our potential lack of cash. There were more out of pocket expenses than we were expecting. We intended to make the repairs to Birch House on our own, and in our own time. Our realtor had insisted on asking about improvements saying, “you never know.” Then the Finn’s turned around and asked us themselves. We felt much better about being asked than doing the asking ourselves. “We’ve asked to meet with all the potential buyers you know. We’ve decided we are backing your offer. Honestly, the Missus just loves you two. Birch House was our first home and we just love it. Is there anything we can do to help you?” Marshall Finn had asked. Turns out the list we’d made at home was just what the doctor ordered. Trent’s forthought helped us out again, but his ego suffered from the triumph. The improvements were part of Trent’s property evaluation process. God, he was so organized it was obnoxious! Our fantasies gave us some goals to work toward and a future to dream of. In the end, the Finns had the list and we left it with them to think it over. “I can’t believe they did all this in two weeks!” I said trailing my black tipped fingers over the new stove while glancing around at the refurbished cabinets. “Well, they must be heavily invested in unloading this place, or they just really liked you two and were prepared to help you out. I think what really motivated them was when you said you’d have to take a renter for the upstairs.” Our realtor commented as she walked. “Rebecca look! They pulled the carpet off the stairs and refinished the old floors! They had to have had people working 24x7 to pull all this off. It’s not like it was in bad shape before, but this… It’s amazing.” Trent’s eyes roamed around the house absorbing details in a state of wonder. “I know. I mean we may want to paint, and I’d eventually like marble on the counters in the bathroom here too, maybe the kitchen. You know how I am about my marble! But, this… is UNREAL. It looks like a brand new house in here!” I gushed bouncing on my toes. “I noticed the shingles were replaced on the way up here. Did they mention any water damage?” Trent asked. “Uh… I have a note here that there was a small leak in the attic. The inspector’s report says there was only discolored sheetrock which has been replaced as well. This is an amazing deal. Brand new roof, that’s a ten thousand dollar value added back.” Ashley insisted redirecting Trent. The woman was amazing! Her word wizardry would leave you eating your own words with confidence. Un...Fucking...Real... “Well, I wouldn’t feel right countering lower than the asking price now. This place is worth way more than they have it up for.” I told them both, my heart investing deeply. “Awe Trent, look they left that rod iron frame up I liked so much. Honey, I just LOVE this place!” I said it and knew I was all in at that point. Our realtor probably felt her commission check weighing down her purse after my blabbermouth. The two story house was priced to move at one-hundred twenty thousand, but with these improvements it was worth around one-eighty easy. The Finns had gone way above and beyond for us. “Well, you can’t go wrong with Birch House. It always sells fast! Owners seem to stay a while or get out in under ten years. Then they move on to something bigger and better if they leave. Maybe it’s good luck?” Ashley shrugged having sussed out my love of the supernatural and superstitious. “There’s only one weird thing. The owners almost always want to meet the buyers before they accept an offer.” She noted certain that this deal was sealed. “But, you guys already nailed that, so I can’t imagine them not signing right away.” “I just want to run around in the yard barefoot and I don’t know… pounce on the couch for a good nap in the sun. These windows are insane! There’s not a smudge on them anywhere. They let in so much light!” I fussed to Trent tugging at his shirt begging him with my eyes. Hell, the grass looks as lush and fluffy as the carpet! “Ashley, you know we are just going to offer their asking price right? See if they will cover the closing costs for us, and we’ll be able to afford the paint right away. If not, we’ll take it anyway and paint in a few months.” Trent tells the realtor confident he’s getting a good deal the confidence sexily wafting off of him. “Oh Trent! Really! God, I really don’t want to leave now. This new carpet probably sleeps better than our bed!” I said bending to rub my hands through the pile on the livingroom floor. I was so wrapped up in the feel of that luxurious carpet that I forgot about my short little skirt. I mooned Ashley with my stocking covered pany-free ass, but she never commented. Girl wanted that commision check! “Ann is going to love it here. She’s always wanted a dog and there’s so much room! I guess we better look over the upstairs and I’ll run through the attic before you call them Ashley. Due diligence and all.” Trent said bounding up the stairs with the hardwood he’d fallen in love with. I stood up and headed over to the only picture still hanging in the house. The current owners had already moved out, and other than their couch and a bed left in a guest room downstairs there wasn’t much left in the house. We really could move in right away, I muse running my finger over the rod iron frame. The same saying hangs in both our parent’s house and Trent’s mom’s place. ‘Love makes a house a Home’ they read. I loved this house already, but that wall hanging really endeared it to me. I was feeling a connection to the house and we hadn’t even signed for it yet! I moved through the living room running my hand along the oak trim framing the doorway. I’ve always loved that quote, I thought leaving the room getting a tactile feel for the place. “Ashley, I’ve never lived anywhere that had an official laundry room before! Trent loves that the hot water heater is in there and accessible too. This place is fucking awesome!” I couldn’t praise Birch House enough! We both knew where I stood. “It is. This is my favorite property. I’d live here myself, but the house is never on the market when I’m looking. Each owner puts their stamp on it of course, but it just seems to add to it’s ambiance not take away. Owners have moved walls or changed things around to suit their tastes, but it always feels so... Homey in here.” Our realtor smiled. “Everything checks out up there Becca. There’s even more impossible renovations upstairs! Ann may want to paint, but there isn’t much reason to do anything else. They even got the sink and some cabinets in the third room. Hell, there’s room for one of your Exes up there too babe.” Trent joked. “Just be glad I like that girl so much. You really did a number on her. The poor thing.” I slapped at Trent giving him a hard time on a stale joke. “Rebecca Phillips! I was like fifteen er something! That was friggin years ago! I didn’t even know we were going steady. I had no idea going to the movies with Wendy was cheating on her! Cut me some slack! We are all adults and friends, best friends even! I don’t think of her as an Ex!” Trent looked tired of the old one sided argument, but I thought it was funny and so did Ann. He was still sensitive about it though. “Then don’t joke about it if you can’t take it. Ann can. You can’t, ya cheater!” I teased Trent even more. “I’d never cheat on you.” He whispered pulling me to him. “You don’t think that do you?” He asked. Ashley cleared her throat, “Becca, you had better be one hundred percent sure. Buying a house, married or not, has legal obligations that follow you even if Trent doesn’t. I can’t make your offer unless I’m sure you’re sure. I wouldn’t be able to sleep at night, even if my job is to sell the house and move on.” “Oh Trent! Your stupid jokes have scared Ash. Go measure something or look at man stuff!” I huffed at him swatting him on the ass dismissing him so the Big Girls could talk. His shoulders told me that he didn't’ appreciate that very much, but Trent ambled outside grumbling about girls being confusing. I watched him walking across the covered front porch and disappear from my view. We waited long enough to be sure he was truly out of earshot. I waited more for Ashley’s sake than for my own privacy. “Ash, you are totally safe making this offer. Trent may be gone a lot, but I see his checks. I know when he’s gone, how long he’s paid for, and I have ways of accounting for his time. The lady that does payroll showed me, Barb. We were at a company picnic and I told her I was uncomfortable with all the weird hours cause truthfully, I’m a little insecure and needy. I’m sure he worries about all those hot young college guys when I’m at class too.” I admit. “Oh, I know what you mean. I’ve been married for years and have zero reasons not to trust my husband, but it’s just so rampant, the cheating. I get worked up sometimes.” She reassured me shrugging her shoulders. “He never really cheated on Ann either. She just felt that way at the time. Neither one of them had dated before, and didn’t know any of the rules. It was hard for her for like two weeks then she was over it, and that was literally years ago. If you ever meet her just know Trent didn’t make her the way she is. She’s just a timid little thing and I love her to death. Trent does too, but we love her in a sisterly way. She’s older than both of us, and we’ve all been good friends since we were in diapers.” I assured her. “Ok, well I feel a bit better. Backstories always help a sale, ya know! Go let the heartbreaker and bring him in the house. Just remember. Everyone loves Birch House. It always feels like Home in here. Don’t be the first ones in like eighty years to bring bad things to this place.” I could feel Ashley’s love for the house and the warning in her threatening tone. Her deep care for the place anchored my feelings. Love grew in my own heart too. I was in love with my future first home! This house would be our Home. I was absolutely confident that Birch House would meet our needs and maybe even see the pitter patter of little feet bounding around. Trent and I walked hand in hand back down the lane to our car talking so fast we had trouble keeping up with each other. Birch House Chapter 2 Trent and I brought Ann to Birch House four days later. --- Ann --- I’m buying a flipping-stinking house! Daddy is going to be so proud! I said to myself while getting out of my jeep. I can’t believe I’m buying a frigging house! I shivered in excitement. “OMG! Girl! I can’t wait to show you OUR new place!” Becca yelled getting out of my jeep. She ran around my jeep bounding over to get me. Her silver bracelets and rings clinking against each other making her sound like a wind chime. “I know sweety. Look, calm down a bit. You’re spazzing!” I laughed hugging her lightly. I placed my hands on her shoulders to hold her to the ground. She looked at me with her large chocolate colored eyes opened widely, “I’m sorry… I just never bought a house before.” “That’s ok hun! Me neither! I’m excited too. Point those puppy dog eyes somewhere else! I really need a place anyway, like tomorrow!” I noted worried more about my own circumstances than buying a house. In fact, buying that house with my best friends was an answer to a prayer. “Ann, I’m so glad you’ll be moving in with me. Really I am. Not even kidding! I was going to be so fucking lonely! Trent’s driving would do me in I’m sure of it. You’ll get the entire upstairs to yourself so you can hide from me. You’ll have like everything up there. It’ll be your own apartment or something. OH. MY. GOD. I’m fucking freaking out.” Excitement spilled from Becca while she shook her hands animatedly grabbing at my elbows. “So they accepted the offer then?” I asked her taking her hands. “Yeah, the Finns accepted at their original asking price, like right away. Trent is freaking out too! He says it’s a steal! He’s prolly gonna be on the phone all day.” My friend babbled while tugging at my arms pulling me toward the house. “I’m sorta afraid it’s too good to be true.” I admitted looking down at her. For the millionth time, I pondered how badly that piercing in her nose must have hurt. She has a tiny silver ring in her septum that just hangs low enough to have a bit of movement. The dainty little diamond high in her left nostril fits tightly against her skin and barely catches the light. Becca was always modifying herself, but I liked her nose the best. Me? I’m a big wuss. I don’t like pain. I have one set of ear piercings to her many and nothing else pierced to her many other piercings. I have it on good authority Becca’s face isn’t the only location with non-biological holes! Just the thought of her pierced flower gave me a serious physical shiver. No way in a hairy dolphin will I ever get my lady bits pierced! I promised myself after that stray thought filtered through my mind. “Yeah, I can’t shake that feeling either… Only just a tiny bit though! They even paid the closing costs and shit. We are moving in on the down payment only, that’s nuts! We can cover that together no problem! You’re amazing by the way! Have I told you that today? We couldn’t do this without you.” Becca says turning around swiftly and stretching up to kiss my cheek meaning I had to bend down cause she pulled me to her. I loved Becca, but I’m a very introverted person. Hugs were the most contact Becca and I had shared and those were infrequent bro-hug type thingies. My childhood was sort of difficult. My parents were great, but my health wasn’t. I ostracized myself from the outside world and only went out when I had to. Trying to date my neighbor Trent had been Mom’s idea. I over invested and it sort of crushed my will to date for a while. Mom’s therapist (I refused to call her my own) said I have a social anxiety disorder. I thought I just like being alone, but I don’t have a Doctorate in what other people think so I got ignored. The kiss was new for us. I didn’t know what to do with it, but my hand drifted up to my face touching the trace of heat her lips had left. “You know, I only have a few days before I have to be out of my apartment. It stinks that I’ll have to move twice.” I complained. “Ah. You’ll only be a couch bum for a couple days. Maybe a couple weeks tops. We are happy to have you.” Becca reminded me of her offer to let me bunk on their couch at Trent’s apartment. “Uh... I decided to stay at the La Quinta Becks. They have a suite and I booked it for seven days. They gave me a good rate, and I’m not hurting for money. Besides, I don’t want to squash the newlywed vibe you two have going on.” I told her following her up to the house. “Awe, really? That’s no fun!” She huffed. “We’ll be all up in each other’s business before you know it. I’m excited. I’ll get more room for about the same money with this house. This move is a no-brainer for me babe.” I said looking down at her. “I may have bought it without you guys if I’d have been brave enough.” “I’m sorry they sold your building, but I’m not sorry to move in with my best friend!” Becca laughed hugging me tightly resting her head on my chest. “Your tall today.” Becca commented looking down at my hikers then back up at my face. “I’m always tall, and your always short!” I giggled and took a turn dragging her a few steps toward our new home. Becca took the lead guiding me around the backside of the house. She was a touchy-feely chick, but today she was a bit over the top. She’d always been that way, and it had been hard for me since I was a pre-teen. I’d dealt with the touching because I trusted her though. She was my first real friend after we’d moved when I was eight. I trusted Becca to get a good feel for the house just like I trusted Trent’s handi-maness to determine if the house was sound. The Lord knows I couldn’t do either! I giggled to myself. You have a certain set of skills… and house buying isn’t one of them. I thought in my best Liam Neeson impression. I hate getting out of the house, and college was just torture for me. My freshman year they made me live in the dorms! With people! I’d fallen into a light depression that year, but I had pushed through my problems and gotten my degree. I don’t really like to be touched, looked at, talked to… Fine. I’m a hermit. Dating was was even worse than living with strangers! It’s not that I enjoyed being alone, but guys just didn’t understand when I needed time alone. I just never really clicked with any of them. They couldn’t give me my alone time. Eventually, I gave up on dating altogether. I worked from home, shopped from home, ate at home, and gamed from home. I had a few friends and a truly lovely family. I just didn’t feel the need to get involved with humanity beyond that. “Look! Look!” Becca shouted as we rounded the house treading on a newer looking stone path. “Oh My stars!” Was all I could say. It was beautiful and I was left standing there dumbfounded. The back of the house looked very different from the pictures that Becca had shown me. There was a patio off the back door maybe three feet or so off the ground accounting for the grade of the hill. That wasn’t the only change though. Four humongous pillars rose from the patio on each of it’s corners. They were supporting another deck. I looked up at the bottom of the upper deck… my deck? There were two new decks, an upper and a lower, off the back of the house! I followed Becca, well got dragged by her, up a beautiful set of stairs. The dark wood had a tinge of red in the stain and was finished immaculately. The handrail was so smooth that when I ran my hand along it, I had no fear of splinters. “B...Becca! Do I really have my own outside access?!?” I stuttered in disbelief. “Yeah, Trent put that on the improvement list right at the top just for the hell of it. Look at this shit! They actually had it done!” Becca gushed literally jumping up and down. “I… I can’t believe it. It’s… so perfect.” I gaped reaching out to touch my own door. “Girl, just wait till we go inside! I don't’ have this key, but look it’s like a real balcony up here!” She giggled turning around to look at the yard. She drug me back around to the front door, but I had a hard time leaving my deck because it was cute and the view was amazing. I was already imaging watching the sunset out here. It looked like I’d have to see the first floor before I had the chance to see my floor though. The Finns had really put in a lot of effort for us, for me. I couldn’t believe all the work that had been done. It was nothing short of amazing. I was that much closer to a new dog. I was thrilled. All the woods in the house were all rich and dark where the walls were a complimentary lighter color. I was sure my little spaz of a friend would end up repainting a few rooms because her tastes are… her own? “Becks I’m pretty happy right now. I’m just so glad you and Trent finally have your own place, well you know mostly your own. I feel like I’m invading though, but I promise I’m like a recluse or something! I won’t mess with your newlywed vibe.” I told her trying to get her to slow down. “Pish! Trent will be on the road a lot, most of the week really. He may start taking some overnight runs or sleeping in his truck. They pay a crazy wad of cash for those two-day runs. We have my car, but he wants to get a bike for running back and forth to work. With you here, I won’t be alone when he’s off being the Man of the House!” Becca said growling in a low voice. “Trent could use some butching up ya know. Those truckers are going to eat alive with that metro head of hair and total lack of man-beard. He looks like a teenage boy… If he carried a hipster bag, they’d probably beat the poop out of him on the spot.” I laughed. “Hey! That’s MY metro-man you’re mouthing there.” Becca put up a token defense of her husband, but lacking in real conviction. She drew up to her full height, which unfortunately for her was just shorter than your average girl. It always makes me giggle when she gets her back up and I still have to look down at her. She looked at me with death in her eyes and then broke laughing hysterically. She hugged me in our shared excitement as we headed upstairs together. It was time to see my floor! There was a small landing upstairs and then a weird shaped hallway. I couldn’t see from one end of the floor to the other, but I’d noticed that in the pictures before. I was already figuring out how to divide up the rooms to create a full house on the second floor. I wanted a nice bedroom suite and there was a beautiful humongous master bedroom suite on this floor on the east wall. I wanted an office, guest room, and a pretend kitchen/dining room. Then I’d have a full apartment on this floor, but this house wasn’t built with that in mind. It did have a dedicated bathroom on this floor that could be a guest bathroom, so that was nice. There was plenty of rooms for the other stuff I wanted to do and I’d get around to it all eventually. “Look it! They put in an outside door on the landing!” She said her platinum hair and purple braids bouncing off her shoulders. The purple braids were tipped with silver skull-face hair ties. “I see. This is super amazing Becks! I can’t believe this. It’s almost like this floor has been remade into a real apartment. I’ll be able to take out a dog and not bother you!” I stood there shocked all over again excitement building. “I know! We’ll love your dog, but I’m glad you can do that out your own door. Just… you know walk it away from the porch a ways.” Becca admitted. “I promise Becks. I’ll do the poop bags and everything.” I agreed. “We told the Finns that we couldn’t afford the place all on our own. Ashley let on like they thought we had to get a renter. I thought she’d look our financial paperwork closer than that.” Becca told me shrugging like it was the realtor’s loss. “So... She knows I’m a co-signer right? I mean I’m covering most of the down payment and all the taxes.” I asked. “I guess, I’m sure she does by now at least. Worst case, she’ll find out at the closing won’t she?” Becca laughed. “It’ll be nice to meet the Finns at least the once.” I admitted. “Let me show ya the rest, there’s more.” Becca’s silver bracelets clacked together as she clapped her hands bounding off once again. Rebecca Phillips is my best friend, but she was just coming out of her goth phase. I was thrilled for that! Goth was preceded by a punk phase, and I for one would love to see the end of all the leather and silver buckles. The punk stuff came after her stab at grunge in her senior year. Japanese culture influenced most of High School before the grunge phase. The entertaining part of my besty is that none of the phases were ever totally left behind. They all left a mark on her eclectic sense of style. I bought her several of those noisey bracelets over the last few years. The purple streaks in her hair were left over from our junior year when two toned hair was her thing. Well, at least the punk and goth phases shared a lot of the same clothes! Goth just added a ton of dark makeup to the mix, at least that’s for the most part how it worked for Becca. I don’t know, there may be a few more piercings these days. I giggled to myself looking at her. Strangely, I found myself doing it much more frequently than I used too. I refocused on my wind chime sounding friend and the tour she was giving. It turned out one of the room’s had been upgraded just for me! There were some basic cabinets making a bar against one wall. They had installed a small overhead cabinet on one end and a fridge on the opposite wall. It immediately reminded me of a workplace break room. The only stuff I’ll have to do downstairs is oven stuff and my laundry! I notice unable to fight back my own sniffles suddenly overwhelmed by the Finns’ thoughtfulness. “Good gracious Becca, this place is amazing! I can’t get around how perfect this house is. I can’t believe they even got a fridge up here. It’s ridiculous!” I gush. “I know! Trent keeps coming over here looking for flaws. Poor guy has a bit of a glass-half-empty complex. It can be hard to keep him happy.” She giggled her hand resting on my arm. ----- I’m a few years older than Trent who was a few years older than Becca’s twenty. Twenty-four wasn’t ancient or anything, but I was the college grad with a few years of working and life under my belt. I would always be the oldest in our house. I loved Becca, but we’d never lived together, and I certainly didn’t have the upper hand in relationship edicate. I had few relationships and even fewer long term friends. Was all this touching normal? I asked myself trying to fight off the sense of invaded space she was stirring up. That day though, we both gushed and giggled about moving into our new house. We talked a lot about the new appliances and discussed colors for our walls. The owners were going to leave the couch and one bed in the guest bedroom downstairs until we closed, then it’d be a flurry to get all our crappy furniture in that beautiful house. ----- All the banking was done, so we were ready when Closing Day came around a few weeks later. All we had to was sign on the dotted lines. We were filled with nervous energy while Trent remained aloof standing with his arms crossed through most of the meeting. It was terrifying and thrilling at the same time. Admittedly, I could afford the house on my own, and I wouldn’t have co-signed with my friends if that weren’t the case. Plan for the worst case scenario! Dad was worried life would smack me and leave me in a lurch so I never got in over my head. I planned to squirrel away the difference that the Phillips would be covering so I had my budget worked out for worst case. Plus I needed to rebuild my savings after the down payment. Becca and I crashed on the downstairs couch as the sun was setting the evening after we closed on the house. Trent had to leave running his first night load. So, we were alone to celebrate in our new house. The view was amazing through the full windows on the west side of the house. We were nestled in watching the oranges and reds while she sipped a beer and I nursed at a sweet tea. Becca, being so short, could only lean her head against my shoulder, but it was comfortable and so was the silence in the room. She took a pull off her beer and looked up at me with her big chocolate brown eyes. She whispered, “I couldn’t do this with anyone else ya know.” “I know Becks. I get it. You don’t have to tell me. Seriously, it’s not charity. You guys really bailed me out here. If you can stand me for a couple years, you’ll be out of school and you won’t need me any more.” I pat her leg letting her know I wouldn’t intrude forever. Her body language changed immediately. She sort of shrank in on herself and sat up separating herself from me. A shadow crossed her face and her hands quickly covered her eyes. Soft sobs wracked her body and her pale shoulders bobbed keeping time with the crying. “Shit Ann. I’m sorry.” She sniffed. “I didn’t mean it like that. I meant, you are literally the only reason we can get this place!” “Oh Becks…” I started honestly confused. Becca cut me off, “No, it took both our credit ratings and you as a cosigner. I just meant please, please, please put up with us for a few years before your life sweeps you out of town. I’ll be ready to help with the bills then. Part-time just doesn’t cover much. Maybe I’ll be ready to let you go by then too.” I turn to do something I have never done before, something that had never occured to me before. I kissed the top of her head. Poor thing, I thought as she tugged me into a side hug burrowing into me. I’m never going to want to leave. I don’t want to get swept away with life or my carrier. I thought to myself not finding the words or the will to say anything. Becca was one of the coolest outgoing people I knew, but she seemed so fragile right then. One day I’d find out what had her so worried, but on that day I attributed it to the stress of debt and moving. “Sorry Becca. I get it. I guess I thought this might be long term thing. You know ‘Crazy Aunt Ann’ living upstairs taking care of your kids in the evenings so you two could do stuff together. I don’t know what I was thinking. Of course, I’ll stay long enough for you to finish school… long enough you won’t need me.” I whispered. “Shit! Damn! Ah Hell Annie. That’s N-O-T what I meant. You better bet your ass that you’ll be crazy Aunt Ann! We may need one of those rooms eventually. Trent wants to ruin my body with at least two kids. There’s only the one spare room down here unless we give up our office.” Becca rushed. “Sorry. I just… Well… Poop. Becks they are tearing down my building! I can’t catch a break anywhere. I thought you were telling me I wasn’t going to be welcome in a few years. I… it’s... I’m sorry.” I sniffed. “Such a potty mouth on such a pretty face.” Becca joked turning my words against me over my pseudo cussing. She got up on her knees and returned my kiss leaving my face uncomfortably close to her cleavage. I sprung up and drug her to the master bedroom on the second floor. My bedroom had a beautiful attached bathroom. It looked like my bedroom was a bit bigger than theirs and i secretly loved that. Buying the whole floor for half the house payment was a steal for me, but I wanted to cheer Becca up. “Your’s and Trent’s room is almost as big as his whole apartment. Plus, it’s on the opposite side of my outside entrance.” I pointed out. “Yeah, it’s a big fucking upgrade from my dorm room!” She bursted out laughing. “This is a huge upgrade for me too! Potty mouth.” I asserted. We moved to what I thought would be my guest room, “Well, the second room downstairs could be the boy’s room. You don’t want those yard apes too close to your room though. Too much rough housing in there. Then you’d have the kid’s bathroom, and then girls room up here if we had to. You know in the future.” “Or you could keep your office if I have two boys or two girls. Since you live up there, you’d have to take care of em if I put any spillover kids upstairs. Maybe we could put that baby monitor receiver in your room!” She teased. “You’re breastfeeding aren’t you!” I blanched looking mortified. No way I wanted to get up at night! “Hell, I don’t know! That’s at least after college and the first year of work or so!” Her face scrunched. “I have to wait like three FLIPPING years to live vicariously through your motherhood!” I mock panicked. “OMG! You’re going to have to get a handle on that fucking mouth before you burn my poor baby’s ears off with your verbal filth!” Becca teased me. “Why I never! My momma would probably spank me to this day if she caught me talking like you! Those poor babies!” I giggled. We broke off in a fit of laughter. Becca hugged closely to me as we walked back into her room hip to thigh. It was a big impressive room too. I really liked her room, but it was the view I was in love with even if my room was a bit bigger. I was truly happy for her and thrilled to be sharing the house with her. She ran a hand down my hair and stepped away from me taking my hand again. More touchy-feely boundaries were broken that day than in both of my previous dating relationships! I didn’t know what to do. I already loved Becca, but I didn’t see other people behaving like this with their friends. Course, one has to leave the house to see other people... Going to have to hit the internet for some research. I’m not sure if I should be offended or not. Still, it’s nice to be this close to someone. I decided. “God we can do anything in here! It’s so huge!” She said sounding like she was in a bit of a weird mood. “I could fit my whole dorm room in here fridge and microwave and everything!” Becca pointed out. “I won’t have an oven upstairs, but I don’t cook much so that wouldn’t be a problem!” I said getting truly excited. “Well, you’ll be eating downstairs with the family anytime I cook.” Becca asserted. “Bah you cook all the time! I’m going to wear out my welcome!” I worried. “Honey, you can’t wear out your welcome. You know why? It’s because your family, and I love you!” She reminded me. “I don’t wanna mess up the whole newlywed humping like rabid bunnies vibe you two have.” I giggled. We left Birch House in a good mood having spent some time in it dreaming of our futures. We headed over to Becca and Trent’s place and grabbed the boxes Trent had brought home for packing. It was enough boxes to move a whole house of people. Becca ran into PIzza Hut for a hot and ready pizza on our way to my hotel. The Packing had started. “Ok, Let’s pack this shit!” She giggled grabbing a piece of ham off the top of our pizza. “Oh I give up! Wish I had something to shove in your mouth so you wouldn’t foul up my air!” I said laughing at her potty mouth. “I’m sure I’ll spontaneously stop cursing as soon as the house is packed with diapers and pacifiers… Till then, Fuck Off!” She cackled at herself. “Let’s watch a movie or something while we pack.”
- 99 replies
-
- 3
-
-
- diaper
- diapergirl
-
(and 14 more)
Tagged with:
-
Hi to all my like minded peeps. I thought I would talk a little about myself, where I have come from and where I hope to be going. I'm not sure where this will go but as time permits I will add. But for now. I'm a guy from Durban South Africa, I'm 44, happily married for 19 years with two daughters age 14 and 11 respectively. I own my own automotive workshop. I have been into nappies for a long time. I can't as some can say that I remember liking nappies before my teens bit I can certainly say that I remember once at the age of probably 13 or 14 going to the local supermarket and buying some baby nappies. This was after I found a used (I know it disgusting) baby nappy on the side walk. I picked it up and took it home with me and tried it. I have no idea what I was thinking at the time and what actually drew me to the nappy. Anyway, so I went and bought a pack of baby nappies and hid them under my bed mattress. After they were finished I never thought about them again. Fast forward to about 6 years ago. I had a job where I traveled my region extensively by car and would spend one or two nights away. At some point I saw adult nappies and without thinking I bought them and tried them out. It was amazing. So I started wearing on and off secretly. Then about 3 or 4 years ago, I got to the point where I needed to tell someone. I didn't want to hide it from my wife any longer. So I got the courage up and told my wife. As everyone says when telling someone. There were lots of questions etc. She was accepting initially then wasn't then she was then she wasn't. This went on and on. Everytime we spoke about it we would fight. I was even accused of only wanting to talk about it. But in my view when one has unresolved issues one wants to talk it out. Over the years I have tired getting my wife to be apart of this by asking her to put me in my nappies or by asking howy nappy is. Small things. I even got "theres a baby in my bed" to help me and my wife to understand this side of me better. To her credit she started reading but became angry and refused to read any further. She said it was very one sided. So time went by and i eventually approached the subject again. (by the way all through this time I have been wearing on and off and around her and around the house). I asked her how she is doing with me and my nappies. She said she has accepted it but still doesn't want anything to do with it. Going back a bit she gave me some rules. Most importantly was to hid it from our girls and family. Which I have done really well. Since then upto now I do feel my wife has slowly been more and more accepting. Just recently I went to her scared as hell and asked her to put a nappy on my. She said she would try. She put it on me with my guidance. Not very well but the point is she did it. Since I have asked her twice more and she has obliged. This has got me bit confused. Why I say this is because where is she in me wearing nappies? I want to talk to her just to see where she is but it scares me. For the simple reason, I don't want to fight with her or be accused of only wanting to talk about my nappies. I have taken a lot up in supporting my wife in the day to day running of the house. I always check on her to see if she OK and I always try my best to make her feel loved. I have for a long time felt that it's a one way relationship because I try support her as much as I can and she doesn't want to support me in the one thing I would love for her to support me in. She does support me in other ways. But for obvious reasons that's not what I am looking for. I suppose I will have to bite the bullet and speak to her again. Anyway that's about all the time I have. Just needed to speak my mind. Thanks for reading.
- 42 replies
-
- diaper lover
- nappy lover
-
(and 3 more)
Tagged with:
-
Allowance By: The Unknown Author “Tommy!” I called up the stairs, holding the banister as I looked upward, waiting for my little man to appear. I heard the shuffling of his socked feet before he came into view, looking down the stairs at me quizzically. “Yes, Mommy?” he asked softly. I smiled at him. “Come down here for a minute, sweetheart, it’s allowance day!” I chirped. Taking hold of the railing, he trudged down the stairs making sure to not move down further until both feet were on a step, just how I’d shown him until he finally reached the bottom. I sat on the back of the couch smiling at him warmly. “You’ve been a very good boy this month, honey.” I told him. He nodded. “Yes, Mommy.” he agreed. “Good boys get rewarded with a bigger allowance, don’t they, sweetie?” I asked him. He nodded once more. “Yes, Mommy.” he agreed. “What did we agree on, twenty?” I asked. He looked up at me and said nothing for a long moment, the gears in his mind working. “It was ten, Mommy.” he corrected. I smiled at him, pleased that he’d learned his lesson from the last time he tried to get a bigger allowance. “Silly Mommy, of course it was ten!” I exclaimed, playfully smacking my forehead which produced a giggle from him. “So, what would you like your ten to be, sweetie?” I asked him. We’d done this dance three months in a row now, me offering him an allowance based on his behavior, the first month being one because he was still adjusting to his new role, he’d opted for his one to be “a night with Mommy in her bed”, thinking that such a request would result in sex no doubt, he was adorably disappointed when he was double diapered “to protect Mommy’s mattress” and made to nurse his bottle while I read him a story and made him my little spoon as he sullenly sucked his binky and fell asleep. The second month saw him adjusting quite well and his one became five as a reward for his good behavior, he requested “five minutes of intimacy with Mommy”, and I allowed him to satisfy my needs for five minutes while he whimpered and whined that his chastity cage was hurting his “peepee” and when the five minutes were up he was sent right to bed frustrated and unsatisfied while I finished the job he’d been woefully unprepared to complete. This month I was sure would be different, he’d been so well behaved and fallen so effortlessly into his role as baby that I didn’t think the concept of sex was even still on his mind. I hadn’t seen a single sticky mess in his diapers for the entire month, not since his last attempt at intimacy with me, and even that was just dribbles of excitement, nothing substantial. He’d grown accustomed to the routine of Sunday night being his night for release, first he’d have his dinner, then I’d give him his bath and then when he was laying on the changing table for his nighttime diapering I’d remove his chastity cage and stimulate his prostate for what had become a comically short time until he spurted his little mess into a wet wipe in my hand and I’d praise him for being a good baby and lock him back up and diaper him and put him in his crib for the night where he slept peacefully after thanking me for letting him cum. He shuffled his feet nervously, hands behind his back as he looked up at me, the heels I wore around him in his now constant while at home bare feet serving to make me much taller than him and cement the concept of our roles of adult and baby in his mind. “May I have ten minutes of grownup time with Mommy?” he asked softly. I was so disappointed that I couldn’t help but sigh and roll my eyes at the request, I was sure he’d learned by now that he wasn’t going to win me back, that nothing he could manage to do with his silly little peepee would change my perception of him, but boys will be boys. “What would you like to have happen in that ten minutes, baby?” I asked, genuinely curious to know whether I’d rushed to judgment or not. He shrugged. “Nothing special, I just want to pretend for a little bit that we’re still married.” he explained. I smiled and stroked his hair softly, absently noting that it was probably long enough to give him a ponytail or even pigtails, thoughts of starting to introduce more feminine things into his routine crossing my mind and being put away for later. “Sweetie, we’re still married.” I reassured him. “Remember what we talked about?” I asked him. He nodded softly. “What did we talk about, baby?” I asked him. He chewed his lip, something I’d come to recognize as a desire for his thumb or binky to be in his mouth because he was apprehensive about what he had to say or do. “I was a naughty husband and Mommy was gonna leave if I didn’t agree to be a good boy and follow all of Mommy’s rules.” he said. I nodded. “And what else?” I asked. He shifted nervously and I wondered if his training pants were dampening as he stood in front of me, but decided to let it slide in the name of reinforcing the boundaries of our roles. “Mommy still loves me, but not in a grownup way anymore.” he finally said. I smiled and nodded, playing with his hair some more. “And why is that?” I asked. He swallowed hard and his eyes began to water. “Because I’m a baby.” he told me. I threw my arms around him and rubbed his back softly. “You’re Mommy’s baby, sweetie, and Mommy will take care of you forever and ever as long as you’re a good boy and follow the rules, right?” I asked. He mumbled an affirmative, his thumb blocking the majority of his words from escaping his mouth, the scent of urine beginning to surround us as I hugged him, confirming my earlier suspicion. I pulled him away from me and smiled as his thumb flew back into his mouth as though it was the only thing keeping him from falling apart and dried his eyes with my thumbs. “You can have ten minutes of grownup time with Mommy if that’s what you really want, baby, but you need to know that it won’t change anything between us.” I told him. “Remember the last two times you tried to show Mommy you were a big boy?” I asked. He sheepishly nodded and sniffled. “And look at where we are after that,” I said, “you’re on the verge of tears, sucking your thumb and Mommy’s pretty sure you’ve had an accident in your big boy panties, haven’t you?” I asked. He sucked his thumb harder and stifled a weak sob as he nodded shamefully. “How can Mommy see you as a grownup when she has to put a frowny face on your potty chart and put you back in diapers for the rest of the day, sweetie?” I asked. He sniffled and sobbed and pathetically shrugged his shoulders. “Mommy thinks you should pick something better for your ten, baby, something that won’t make you sad.” I told him. “What about ten,” I drew the word out as I thought of a suggestion, “pieces of candy from the store!” I offered, knowing he had a sweet tooth. He glumly shook his head. “What about ten kisses on that cute little tummy while Mommy gets you changed?” I cooed, giving his stomach a little tickle. He squirmed and pulled away and shook his head once more. I was starting to become annoyed with his fussiness and resolved to put an end to it once and for all. “If you don’t stop pouting, Mommy’s going to decide on something for you, and right now she’s thinking ten days of being a little girl might be fun.” I threatened, targeting whatever shred of masculinity he had left. He fell right into the trap as he stomped his foot and glared at me, the last act of defiance I was going to tolerate that day. I stood up and took his hand in mine as I started to ascend the stairs to his room. “What should we call you?” I mused aloud. “Tammy is the obvious choice, but that’s a name for trailer park bimbo’s and Floridian strippers.” I continued as I pulled him along up the stairs, stopping when his hand slipped from mine and he landed with his hands on the steps and his knees on the lower steps looking up at me pleadingly. “Crawl up the stairs behind Mommy, baby.” I commanded as I resumed my climb and waited at the top looking down at my pathetic baby husband. “I don’t wanna be a girl!” he whined. I crossed my arms in front of my chest. “And I don’t want peepee dribbles on my stairs, so get moving young lady!” I said calmly but forcefully, delighting in the visible shiver he displayed at my tone. His lower lip jutted out as he began to crawl up the stairs, his tears falling down his cheeks and onto the stairs as he took one step at a time on his ascent to his new role. When he reached the top I helped him to his feet and took his hand once again and led him to his room, a perfect representation of his various stages of development encapsulated in one space. One half of the room was for his baby side, fully stocked changing table, crib, little penned in area with soft toys, and the other was for when he was behaving, a toddler bed, a small desk with a computer for him to play games and visit age appropriate websites on and bigger boy toys spilling from the toy box and littering the floor. “Look at this mess, why didn’t you clean your room like Mommy asked?” I asked him. He stammered a weak excuse of planning to do it but I’d called him downstairs just as he was about to start. I sighed. “Well, Mommy will just have to clean up another of your messes today, won’t she?” I asked rhetorically. He’d resumed sucking his thumb and resigned himself to silent acceptance of his fate. I turned and knelt in front of him. “Speaking of messes.” I said as I pulled his pants down to reveal his sodden training pants, noting that he’d actually dampened the front of his shorts with his accident. “Clearly these were a mistake.” I commented, touching the front of the garment and holding my wet fingers to his nose. “Did you even think about asking Mommy for the potty?” I asked him. He wrinkled his nose and pulled away from the offending smell as he shook his head. “I thought as much.” I told him. “I suppose it’s back to diapers for a while then, huh?” I asked in mock disappointment. He pulled his thumb from his mouth and started to speak but I gave him my “Mommy’s not interested in hearing your excuses” look and he popped his thumb right back where it came from. I smiled as I stood and looked around the room. “You know, if we got rid of this big boy stuff, which you clearly don’t need, we could set up a pretty little princess castle for you to play in.” I teased, delighting in the shades of pink and red his little cheeks cycled through. “Ooh, we could get you a pretty unicorn rocking horse and put a special toy on the seat for when you’re a good girl!” I continued, knowing that he was close to breaking down completely, leaving him completely cowed and ready for whatever I had in mind for him. He was shaking his head vigorously at every suggestion, but the little bump in the front of his training panties betrayed him. “No?” I asked as I knelt back down and put my fingers to his pathetic little nub, stroking it gently through the thick, wet fabric. “Are you sure?” I cooed. “Don’t you want to be Mommy’s pretty little princess?” I asked with a fake pout. He shook his head but stood there, trembling on the verge of having another accident at the slightest bit of attention shown to his diminished manhood. “I think you’re fibbing, baby.” I told him. “I think you want to make a sticky mess in your little training panties and then show Mommy what a baby you truly are by squatting down and making a stinky for her.” I explained, whispering each word softly into his ear, feeling him begin to twitch and spurt against my fingers. “See, you’re practically begging Mommy to put your hair in cute little pigtails and buy you all kinds of pretty little dresses, aren’t you?” I asked him. He shook his head weakly, the fight nearly gone from him as tears of shame poured from his eyes. “If you’re a good girl, maybe Mommy will start looking for a Daddy for you.” I whispered. “Would you like it if Mommy brought a big strong man home?” I asked. “You could sit on his lap and Mommy could teach you how to give him special kisses on his Daddy parts so you get a big surprise.” I continued, watching in delight as he started to lower himself into a squat. “Mommy and Daddy could tuck their little princess in her crib for the night and then go to their room to try and make you a little brother or sister.” I said as he closed his eyes and began to grunt. “If you poop your panties you’re telling Mommy that you want all of those things, baby.” I reminded him. His eyes opened slowly and he looked up at me with a calm I’d yet to see from him outside of his Sunday routine, and I knew that I’d stumbled upon something even he hadn’t been aware he’d wanted. As the sounds of the back of his panties began to fill the room I stroked his hair and kissed his forehead and he pulled his thumb from his mouth and smiled up at me “Can my name be Wendy, like in Peter Pan?” he asked softly, his voice lighter and sweeter than I’d ever heard. I nodded and kissed his forehead again. “Of course.” I told her. “Wendy is a lovely name for such a pretty little girl.” I whispered. *****Epilogue***** Five years had passed since that afternoon when Tommy was expelled from my princess and Wendy was born into the world. I’d made good on the details in my story, stripping all traces of Tommy from the house and turning the nursery into a gorgeous princess haven for my darling baby Wendy. She took my last name when we legally changed her name to Wendy and agreed that she wanted to be adopted by me, and after the divorce was made final we did just that. When I started dating I introduced her to my suitors first thing and made sure that everyone was clear on the terms of a relationship with me, that I was a single parent to a very special little girl, and dozens of men came and went in the face of such strange circumstances. Ross was different, he was instantly kind and compassionate to Wendy, and she took an immediate shine to him as well, giving him a goodnight hug and kiss after the first night we’d all spent together after I’d met him at the gym. I never told Wendy this, but Ross and I had been quite amorous prior to him meeting her. He was strong and dominant, nothing like what Tommy had been when we’d started dating. I learned quickly that he’d be a perfect fit as a Daddy for Wendy when he introduced me to his hand as I draped myself over his lap in a hotel room one afternoon after we left the gym. Spanking had been something I’d used to keep Tommy in line in the beginning, and the thrill of having someone take control and spank me was exhilarating if not a little shameful. Diapers entered our dynamic shortly after he met Wendy, that first time laying on the bed with a glowing red bottom, sniffling and whimpering behind a pacifier as he gently applied cool cream to my backside still sticks in my mind as the ultimate realization of just how effective the punishment I’d chosen for my cheating and abusive ex husband turned permanent baby girl truly was. If Ross could strip me of all the trappings that made me a strong, successful, independent woman and leave me a sniveling baby entirely at the mercy of her Daddy with only a few dozen smacks on the bottom, I genuinely wondered if there was anything he couldn’t make me do if he wanted it. When we got married, Wendy begged to be our flower girl and we explained that there wouldn’t be a need for that as we were having a simple ceremony at the courthouse, but her sorrow from the news led us to allowing her to throw flower petals around our feet in front of the judge, cleaning them all up obediently once the ceremony was complete. That night while Wendy slept peacefully in her crib I moaned into my pacifier as Daddy brought me to several mind bending orgasms in my soggy, stinky diaper, the juxtaposition of being a woman newly married spending her honeymoon filling her diapers and cumming in them repeatedly made me wonder if I was truly any better than Wendy. ********** Standing in the doorway of the children’s room, the twins, Madeline and Charlotte in their toddler beds sleeping peacefully, both long out of diapers both day and night even at three while Wendy snored softly in her crib, the scent of a messy diaper already lingering in the air even though she’d only been put down an hour prior to her older sisters, Ross gently rubbed my pregnant belly as he hugged me to him with his strong arm. “Penny for your thoughts.” he whispered. I shook my head and turned my attention to him, my hand resting on his above our new bundle of joy as it softly kicked within my womb. “I was just wondering if Wendy should grow up a little, maybe join her sisters and give us a break from diapers for a few months before the baby comes.” I told him. He took my hand in his and led me to the crib to look down at Wendy. “She doesn’t seem to be ready for that.” he told me as he reached down and patted her bulbous bottom through her fleece footed pajamas with Wendy from Peter Pan on the front. I smiled down at her, watching the pacifier in her mouth bob softly as she slept. “I know, but don’t we have a responsibility to at least give her the choice?” I asked. He kissed my cheek. “She made her choice a long time ago, honey.” he told me. “If you think she’d be agreeable to potty training or even able to see any kind of success with it, we can definitely try, but I’m pretty sure she’d fail at that like she failed at being a husband and adult and wind up right back where she is now.” he explained. I nodded. “But that means we’re going to be parents of a baby for the rest of our lives.” I told him. He nodded. “You didn’t think of that when you pushed her to be a baby?” he asked. “When you turned her into a girl? When you divorced and adopted her? At no point during all of those things did you stop and think that you were responsible for her?” he asked. I sighed. “I did, but-” I started. “But you wanted to have your fun, didn’t you?” he asked. I nodded softly. “Yes, sir.” I said, feeling as small as the other girls in the room at that moment, wishing he wasn’t chastising me in the nursery of all places. “Sir?” he asked. “Do you think we’re still at a point where ‘Sir’ is appropriate?” he asked. I flushed, hoping the nightlight wouldn’t allow him to notice my blushing. “No, Daddy.” I corrected my self. “You were a very selfish little girl for doing what you did to Wendy, weren’t you?” he asked. I nodded. “Yes, Daddy.” I agreed. “Do you think it’s fair to do what you did to her and then want to give up responsibility just because it’s not as fun for you anymore?” he asked. I shook my head, “No, Daddy.” I said softly. “Do you think you deserve a spanking for your childish attitude and behavior?” he asked. I shuddered softly, the pleasant tingle of being talked down to and overpowered providing the yin to my dominance over Wendy’s yang. “No, Daddy, I know I was naughty but I don’t need a spanking, it could hurt the baby.” I told him, knowing that it wasn’t true but hoping it would get me out of trouble. He smiled widely in the dimly lit room, his teeth making him look like a hungry predator in the darkness, waiting to pounce on me and take me back to his den. “You’re right, a spanking wouldn’t be good for the baby.” he agreed. I breathed a sigh of relief to myself. He took my hand and began to move to the changing table where he grabbed one of Wendy’s double thick overnight diapers before he started to head to the bedroom door. “What’s that for, Daddy?” I asked fearfully. He stroked the back of my hand with his thumb. “Well, a spanking isn’t good for a baby, but a diaper should be just fine to illustrate just how childish your behavior was.” he told me as we passed through the nursery door and he closed it behind us. “Daddy, no!” I protested. “I’m a big girl, I don’t need diapers!” I whined, keeping my voice at a whisper so as not to wake the girls. He smiled at me and guided my thumb into my mouth before patting my head softly. “You’re whatever Daddy wants you to be, just like Wendy was whatever you wanted to be.” he told me as he pulled me behind him to our room and he closed the door behind us. “Right, baby?” he asked me. In the well lit room he could clearly see my blush as I was forced to reluctantly nod. “Good girl.” he whispered into my ear as he crossed the distance between us and hugged me to him. “Now, if you continue to be a good girl and be Daddy’s baby for the night then maybe Daddy won’t have to extend your punishment to outside our bedroom where Wendy might see you wearing her diapers.” he explained. I shivered and nervously sucked my thumb as he guided me to the bed and began to undress me before he unfolded the diaper and spread it out so he could lay me down on it. He smiled down at me lovingly. “Maybe we should see if you can earn an allowance like you let little Wendy have.” he offered. I whimpered softly as I dribbled a bit of pee onto the waiting diaper before he could get it pulled up into place and taped shut. He chuckled softly as he taped the diaper closed around my waist, watching the front darken as I finished peeing immediately after the tapes were secured, his thick fingers pressing against the warm padding. “That’s a good start.” he told me. I closed my eyes and bucked my hips into his fingers, ashamed at my behavior, turned on by his dominance, humiliated that I’d allowed him to cow me as easily as I’d done to Wendy, and hopelessly in love with my big strong Daddy as I knew he was hopelessly in love with me. “I love you, Daddy.” I mumbled around my thumb. He lay next to me on the bed, his fingers gently rubbing against the swollen front of my wet diaper and he kissed the tip of my nose lightly, smiling at my childish giggle. “Daddy loves you too, baby, even if you are a naughty baby that wets and messes her brand new diaper as soon as Daddy gets it on you.” he said. The prospect of messing myself wasn’t very enticing, but this wasn’t the first time we’d done this dance, and I knew from past experiences that the awfulness of being in a poopy diaper wouldn’t last long and he’d make sure that after my bath I got special attention payed to my princess parts before we finally went to bed. The similarity between this series of events and Wendy’s long forgotten Sunday night routine were not lost on me, but all I could do was hope that things didn’t go any further to the point that I’d be meeting my future Mommy dressed in my diaper and jammies before Daddy put me to bed in my crib while they went out on a date. He wouldn’t do that to me though! Right? The End
-
The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 1. *The sound of Jawas fills the cab of my car making me smile.*Allen told me they were haggling over scrap on Tatooine, but I had no clue. Don’t get me wrong, I love those movies, but nothing like my husband does. Clearly, he has been messing with my phone again. “Ok Google, Read New Text.” I tell the dead air in my car while rolling my eyes at my nerdy husband’s antics. “You have one new text from Allen at five thirty-two PM. Do you want to hear it?” “Yes.” I tell my phone.The female computerized voice reads back my husband’s text. It is an odd juxtaposition listening to his words and imagining his face to the female’s jilting voice. Google reads, “Shit hone. That ducks. You don’t have a lot of options there.”Autocorrect hates him. It always makes me giggle while I try to interpret what he’s going on about. I get tired of dictating to my phone and pick it up directly. Normally, I’d wait and talk slowly through the menu’s to send a reply, but it wasn’t dangerous just sitting here. I’m not about to text and drive. That shit is dangerous!I text him back.[Me:] Radio says there’s a tractor trailer rig overturned. I’m locked in. I can’t stop bouncing my legs. I gotta pee so freaking bad! At least Molly’s sleeping through it. Thank god for pool day.[Allen:] ITH (our own code – In The House)[Me:] You never beat me home! (Yeah, I’m whining at this point.)[Me:] I don’t know what to do! If I pee my pants, the leather will be fine but the carpet…[Allen:] You can’t do anything about it babe. Don’t hurt yourself. I’ll have the car cleaned.[Me:] You’d use Bill though! We KNOW them![Allen:] You have a leaky 3.5 year old in the car. They won’t know who it was. [Me:] Still, I’d know…[Allen:] Getting in the shower. Text me when you finally break free. [Me:] KI sit there looking around at an utter loss. Molly’s daycare is only fifteen minutes away from the house on the interstate. I had come up on the wreck just after I picked up my daughter. I was still a mile away if the radio report was correct. I was locked in and at a full stop before I knew what had happened. No matter which direction I look, all I can see are cars. Worse, I’m on an inside lane and can’t even off-road through the median! I’m stuck tight, and my bladder isn’t happy about it. In fact, it feels like it’s going to be downright rebellious.The tide is changing and I began to lose the fight with lactic acid and muscle fatigue. I shouldn’t have left the house without peeing first, but I thought I’d be home in thirty minutes! Turns out that was a bad decision, one that was biting me in the ass. The muscles between my legs twinge. I’m long past the pain stages. In fact, everything that I’ve been clinching is numb. I smack at my knees trying to get some feeling back into my legs and to distract myself from the numbness and the impending disaster. I start singing along to the radio at the top of my lungs. That distraction doesn’t work either. Molls, just keep sleeping baby. Mommy can’t handle peeing herself in front of you. I thought dreading the implications that seeing me wet myself would have on my daughter. Allen said I could blame the mess on my little Molls, but that doesn’t feel right either. I need a solution. Spontaneously, a really crazy thought burns brightly in my head. I snap a picture of my hand coming out of my daughters diaper bag and send it to my husband before breaking out into a feverish flurry of activity. I turn up the radio to keep all my wiggling from waking up Molly. I can’t believe I’m about to do this… I can’t believe I’m doing this… I can’t believe I did that…-----I get home at fifteen after six, which is far later than I normally pull up. I’m super not thrilled about it either! Traffic was a bitch even after I FINALLY got past the wreck. I’m not sure how my half day of working from home turned into eight full hours of work, or how easing back into fulltime turned into such a stressful day. The lousy drive home from picking up Molly was the icing on my crap cake. I am very anxious to get my daughter in the house and try to find a way to process this situation. I need a fix of my man! I need to cuddle up to him and watch some TV, and maybe drink a glass of wine. I stand up stretching my back and lean against my car. I take a breath then reach in and grab all our stuff. Lastly, I shoulder our diaper bag popping open Molly’s door. I wake her up with sweet words. Molly takes my hand grabbing my fingers tightly and we make our way to the house. I have an unbalanced load for sure, and it's leaning heavily to my diaper bag side. Waddling around didn’t make it anything graceful let me tell you!Thank God she's walking now. I'd be done in if I had to carry her too. I wouldn’t have had the strength. My little Doodlebug is too big for me to haul her around on my hip anymore. I think sadly.She toddles beside me into the house. She doesn’t quite wake up either. She sways on her feet still groggy shambling like a zombie. I smile entering my house. It is simply thrilling to be home, it smells like safety and relaxation. Today, it seems like a major accomplishment just to get here. It had seemed impossible only thirty minutes ago. My little angel and I had been stuck for more than an hour behind that overturned tractor trailer less than ten miles from our house! I drop everything on the couch leaving Molly just inside our front door. She sways on her feet trying to wake up, but with little success. My attitude went from relief to anger in a heartbeat wanting to get out of my work clothes and Allen nowhere to be found.“Allen.” I bellow stress lining my voice. Seriously, he should be here! He knew I'd be coming in in a hurry.“Hey, Rob. Glad my girls…” He inhaled sharply seeing my face. “I take it you’re both wet?”, he chuckles.The balls on this man!“Funny aren't ya!” I growl. “Just take her will you. I'd like to get cleaned up.” I shoot him my best grouchy face, and let me tell you it can melt the paint off the walls! “Are you still wearing it? I mean did it fit?” My devoted husband stutters with an odd air about him. It’s almost seems like he is excited and it’s overriding his sense of self-preservation. I blushed instantly losing my bluster, “Ya to both. I mean I need to go freshen up, and I'm sure Molly would like a fresh diaper.”“Show me.” He insists not moving an inch after taking Molly’s sleepy little hand.“What! No. It’s bad enough I'm wearing it and its freaking wet! I'm not going to be showing this thing off. I’m supposed to be sexy to you, not some kind of screw-up.” I gasp.“I'm going to be honest here. Those do nothing for me on Molly, but I've been messed up thinking about it since you texted me that picture of her diaper. I wasn’t sure if you’d use it. I can't believe it fit.” Allen confesses.“I couldn't either. I mean it's a stretch, but our Doodlebug isn't very little. In fact, I probably shouldn’t really carry her around anymore. She doesn’t need to see this.” I ramble not so stealthily to divert his attention. I say anything trying to distract him with my moment of nostalgia from earlier.I’m super embarrassed about my situation, but at only twenty-four, I am still very interested in keeping my husband turned on. Getting him excited gets me that way too. Most of the time it would be a win-win situation, but this isn’t one of those times.But, the look on Allen’s face gives me pause. My excuse to be out of this thing was that it wouldn’t be attractive, but is it. Is he turned on?I think about it and decide I am pretty comfortable in one of Molly’s diapers, even though it was a little soggy and was pulling tightly at my hips. He clearly wants to see it. If it turns him on... Wearing it doesn’t cost me anything but some embarrassment.“Show me, babe.” Allen interrupts my thoughts prompting me a second time.“Pick her up first.” I instruct and he complies.Almost on auto-pilot, I kick off my heels and slide out of my slacks. I drop my boy-short style panties which leaves me in my blouse and Molly’s size five Luvs diaper. It’s a startling contrast, half a business outfit and half a toddler's. I try to pull together some sexy thoughts so I can model the diaper for him. I end up laughing instead. Allen laughs too. His laughing caught our little Doodlebug’s attention causing her to wake up from her shoulder nap. She looks around for a moment to see what all the laughter is about. “Mommy, it's ok. That's what diapers are for. You'll make it next time.” She tells me full of love and support. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 2. Molly parrots the phrase she'd heard so many times in the last couple years. My poor little Doodlebug continues to have some setbacks with her potty training. She’s heard that line a lot. My tall three year old daughter takes after her daddy. We are betting Molly will end up over six feet tall. I’m worried I'll wake up any day now and she’ll be taller than me. I’ll go to get her out of bed and she’ll stand up in some cute little girl night gown and I’ll have to look up to look her in the eyes. The doctors tell us that she’ll grow out of the bladder problems eventually. They said her bladder isn’t keeping up with the rest of this growth spurt. Things will even out in a year or so. “Thanks Doodlebug. I can't believe how comfortable this thing is Allen.” I say feeling the outside of the soggy diaper. “Do I need to give you two a minute.” He teases me. He might, I thought. Damn, I can’t believe I thought that. This is super comfy though. A bit tight, but all warm and soft feeling inside and out. Watching me play around with the diaper clearly gets my husband wound up. Suddenly, I find myself excited too. The diaper is still comfortable to me, but I felt... naughty!?! Standing there in a wet diaper, in my living room, in front of my horney husband, and lovely little daughter. I send Allen off to change Molly while I head to change myself and get cleaned up. I slowly make my way to our master bathroom and start the shower. Shutting the bedroom door, I look the diaper over checking the fit for the first time. The length is ok. The diaper comes up over my ass and covers my lady bits, but the sides are struggling to stay latched without my panties holding them together. Still, it fit! I can’t believe it. I rub the wet front panel and clinically study the garment. I've changed countless diapers on my Doodlebug, but this one is different. I focus in on the diaper so completely that my mind stills. That almost never happens! I bet the size up would fit pretty good. Wonder what my options are? Maybe there’s adult or teen diapers out there I could get. It seemed to hold up most of that wetting. I’ll need to start shaving again. Allen will love that. I think I’ll like that feeling too. Smooth skin next to delicate cotton. I shiver and it dawns on me that I haven’t finished peeing. I sit down on the toilet with the diaper still on. I decide to let it have its shot at holding a full wetting. I release into the diaper and smile at the hissing sounds. Well, that’s not subtle at all. I sit there on the toilet grinning like a fool. I have a short internal debate before letting it all go and just going for it. I wet the diaper with the rest of that initial payload that I had been holding back since the wreck. Surprisingly, it holds ok till the very last when I heard the tinkle of my water hitting the toilet water. I sit for a bit to let the diaper catch up with my flood. Then, I stand feeling a little bit of my urine still sloshing around inside waiting to be absorbed. I know from years of changing Molly that there is a big difference in a small wetting and a full one. She’s getting big enough that she can flood her size fives if I didn't keep an eye on her. Those fives should fit her a while longer if I can squeeze my Momma-ass into them! Even the sixes aren’t going to fit me like they fit Molly, but they'd probably fit about like my bikini panties. They would cover my front and rear leaving some coverage over my hips. I stand and poke at the diaper turning little circles in front my full length mirror. I take off my top and bra getting one last look at myself in the mirror before jumping in the shower. It would have leaked more if I'd been sitting on it when I wet it. I’m thankful I only trickled a little in the car. I rub the soaked diaper enjoying the change in texture for a moment. I’m not sure how wearing that diaper changed from necessity to fulfilling some dream of Allen’s, or how it turned from dressing up for him to sort of maybe-kind-of-liking-it for myself, but it did. Allen’s mood must be contiguous. My intentions change from feeling the diaper out of curiosity to pleasure, and I don’t hold back. I shake my head smiling at my reflection in my vanity looking like a guilty child with her hand in her pants. Oddly, even with the diaper wet, it was still comfortable to me. Eventually, I decide I look sort of good in it too. With no small amount of regret, I take off the diaper and toss it into our bathroom trashcan. Still smiling and full of impulsiveness, I get in the shower and wash my hair. My mind is in a million places diner, bills, chores, work, Allen, Molly, and strangely that diaper. My thoughts drift from one train of thought to another, though never fully exploring any to the point of making any decisions. I find myself soaping down my pantie area and reaching for my razor. I shave myself smooth trying to remember why I had stopped, laziness I suppose. I have been tidy recently, but I haven’t been bare since before Molly was born. I know Allen will be thrilled. It feels new and fun and playful to be smooth again. I dry off and grab my favorite fleece nightgown. My mind is still buzzing with dozens of unfinished thoughts clouding my ability to concentrate. My gown is red with little white bears all over it. Allen bought it for me for Christmas a few years back. It reminds me of the Christmas Coke commercials. I tug some boy short style panties, my favorite kind, up my legs and head toward our kitchen. My mind is floating as I move around on auto-pilot. Unfortunately, it’s a common thing for me to be wandering around with my mind adrift. Allen and Molly are still in the guest bathroom giving her potty a whirl. I smile and wave at her behind Allen’s back. She smiles and waves back at me. Who knew her diapers would be that comfortable? I didn’t even feel gross after peeing in it! If she’s having bladder problems and the diapers are that comfortable for her too, it’s little wonder we are having trouble potty training her. I muse. Then, I pad barefoot toward the kitchen, but as I pass Molly’s room I’m struck by a brand new desire. My panties suddenly feel too thin. They aren’t making any noise. There is no sense of air pockets moving around as I move. I thoughtlessly draw closer to my daughter's changing table. I want another diaper. They are naughty and fun and comfortable and… I start justify my actions internally. Wait. I don’t have to have a reason! I’m a damn adult. If I want to wear a diaper around my own home, then I can damn well do it! Before I can second guess anything, I find myself sporting a brand new dry Luvs diaper tucked away safely under my boy short panties. I smile like an idiot on my way to the kitchen. I feel like I’m in some sort of trance, like I’m not totally in control of myself. I can’t reason why, but these diapers are making me happy. I damn near skip the rest of the way toward my next objective. In the kitchen, I finally snap out of my haze and find myself able to focus. I mean really focus on preparing dinner. It’s totally crazy. I simultaneously preheat the oven, start some knock off DiGiorno pizzas, and put out drinks for my little family while setting the table. I know I am enjoying my naughty secret, but I'll bet Allen will enjoy it more. I grow more excited by the minute thinking about teasing him until Doodlebug goes to bed. I can hear them leave the bathroom and head to Molly’s room to change for dinner. You’re not the only one sister! I think. They'll be here any minute and my private time with my growing obsession will end. I am very comfortable standing there in my diaper and nightgown. I sort of feel cheated that it won’t stay on without the panties though. It is fine up and moving around, but as soon as I sit the tabs will pop off. I need my own diapers, ones that fit me better. I decide. I'd no sooner come to that conclusion than my husband and daughter come into the kitchen. They are both smiling at me. I show them a warm loving smile in return. I genuinely love my little family. I guess we are pretending that I didn’t just pee myself in the car earlier. K? I shrug turning back to the work of preparing the meal. Allen helps me set the table, while Molly shuffles back and forth carrying anything we let her carry. We aren’t perfect, but we are happy. Suddenly, I realize that I could hear my Doodlebug toddling back and forth in her crisp new diaper. I hadn't even thought to listen to see if I was crinkling too! As turned on as Allen had been, I am fairly confident I’m not scuttling around as loudly as my daughter is. If I was, he'd have been asking to see it again. I’m almost certain of it. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 3. I try to put the diaper out of my mind and just continue on with my day. I try, but I can’t quite do it. I decide to blame Allen. Him being in the room with me changes how I feel about the diaper. I feel like I could zone out and forget about it if he wasn’t in here. He is though, so I keep focusing on my diaper creating fun random moments where I feel what I am wearing. Those moments cause goofy smiles. These smiles aren’t timed with the conversation at all. They are timed with the bulk between my legs and the tugs at my hips. I probably look crazy puttering around the kitchen smiling at random unexplainable moments. Fortunately, Allen is focused on Molly and I don’t have to explain myself. Allen whistles something peppy and Molly gets up to dance around. She flitters around my kitchen like a little diapered fairy princess. I decide my happiness must be contagious, that or it’s the diapers! It’s all sort of surreal. Two of the three of us are diapered, but only I know this secret. “Daddy da big twuck laid down.” My three year old told her father sitting down. “That's what mommy said.” Allen. “I felt so bad about it honey. We were close enough to see what happened. It looked awful.” Me. “I know babe. I'm sorry you had to see that.” Allen said patting my hand. “I falled asleep daddy.” Molly. “You fell asleep.” Allen corrected. “She didn't make it long. She left me all alone stuck in traffic and bored to tears. If it wasn't for AC and candy crush, I'd have gone crazy.” Me. “And what about the potty situation?” Allen asked with a smile. Bastard, I project at him mentally. “I didn't make it daddy. I went potty in my sleeps.” Molly. “That's what your diaper is for princes. You'll make it next time. And you went potty in your sleep.” Allen told our daughter with comforting confidence. “We all need some help sometimes baby.” I tell Molly patting her shoulder. *ding* “That's me guys. Let me get our pizzas in.” I tell them standing. I get up doing my best to move normally, but it proves harder than I expect. The small bulk of my toddler's diaper between my thighs alters my gait a bit. I probably look just a tiny bit uncomfortable in the ass area while walking, but in my mind I look like a bow-legged cowboy. Gonna have to remember to practice with that a bit. I think forcing myself to walk normally. A few strides and I’m standing at the oven. My waist is hidden from my family. I put the two pizzas directly on the rack. Mhhhm crispy pizza… As I bend down, my diaper pulls tight and my nightgown rides up my thighs. The diaper is peeking out of the waist band of my panties, but my gown doesn’t ride anywhere near that high for it to be seen. If my husband could see me from the table, he’d likely see the diaper behind the tight thin material of my panties poking out from under my gown. I know he’d be looking if he could! Too bad for Allen. I think and wiggle my ass in the air like a happy puppy. Then for the first time I hear myself crinkle. I break out in a huge smile and can’t hold back the happy giggle. “What's going on in there?” Allen calls from our tiny dining area sounding suspicious. “Nothing.” I call back still laughing. “Sounds like we're missing out on some fun in there.” Allen. “Nah, everything is great. I'm just glad to be home with my family.” Me. I go with a partial truth since I don’t want to talk about the diaper in front of my Doodlebug. I don’t want to admit it, but I want to keep it a secret for myself too, at least for a while. I feel like me wearing a diaper on purpose would be confusing for Molly at this critical potty time. I fail to consider that I have already been caught in one, and that to her perception of things probably wouldn’t be any different. I walk back in the dining area swaying my hips trying to look seductive as possible in a fleece mid-thigh nightgown. Allen’s smile is full of promises for adult fun time with excitement dancing in his eyes. That promise of intimacy lights a fire in my already warm diaper. Shaving had been a terrific idea, and it’s adding to the excitement of my situation. I can feel my entire diaper. It’s feels like taking a Band-Aid off a finger after several days and feeling things directly against your skin again, only in reverse. All that cottony goodness feels delicious. I saunter over to Allen bending to get a big girl kiss from my husband. I can hear myself crinkling and it just ups my thrill level. Too bad I can’t just send Molly to her room. We could get naked in the kitchen if she weren't in here with us. Yeah, I’m that freaking horney now. After I confirm for Allen that naked things are coming with my lips, I sit back down. I take a deep breath to ask Allen about his day and try to focus on something besides my rampant teenage-level hormones when Molly tugs on my sleeve pointing at the coloring books on the table. We keep a twenty-four pack of colored pencils and a stack of coloring books on the kitchen table for just such occasions. Molly talks, but she's not much for conversation, and those colored pencils have saved more than one meal in the last few years. “Hey Doodlebug, let's color Daddy a picture.” Me. “May I have da street one Mommy.” Molly. “Good manners princes, it’s THE street one. Sesame Street.” Allen. “I'll take the Spider-Man one.” Me. Molly just sort of ignores her dad’s verbal guidance reaching for the requested book. We color a few pages while waiting on the pizza to cook. I take my time and color my picture thoroughly. It’s a nice job, if I do say so myself! Coloring has always been therapeutic for. I really relax simply sitting there in my diaper coloring Spider-Man pages with my daughter. “Rob, babe, don't chew on your hair.” Allen chastises me. “I, what.” I blew a raspberry spitting my blonde hair from my mouth. “Jeez, I haven't done that in years.” I stutter softly to myself. *ding* Allen puts a hand up to stop me from getting out of my chair. “You just keep coloring babe. I'll cut up the pizza. You look sort of cute sitting there.” Allen smiles at me. “Yay, Mommy cowors wid me!” Molly. “Colors.” Allen. “Colors.” Molly says concentrating. “With.” Allen. “Wiff.” Molly. Allen shrugs indicting that her last shot was close enough. “Alright, since you're both twisting my arm.” I grin happy to stay seated and finish coloring my page. I knock out the page I started while Allen gets the pizzas out of the oven and plates them. Then, I pick out another page from my super hero coloring book. I’ve always loved superheroes, but it is a causal fandom. I decide to see how black and yellow looks on our friendly neighborhood Spider-Man. Cause… why not? I unconsciously narrow my focus on my coloring. I slip away from all the fuss that usually clouds my head. Full Coverage. Stay between the lines. Even color depth. Light position. Let’s see, I’ll trace the outer edge of the yellows to a darker shade just inside the existing black lines. Yeah, I like that. Really helps the contrast with the black to yellow conversion. Molly and I are coloring so hard that we don’t even notice Allen coming back. He walks up to the table and sits the two cut pizzas down, and grabs our drinks for a refill. When he walks behind me to get to his seat, he reaches down and slides a finger between my cheek and my hair. He pulls gently and I feel my hair tugging from my mouth. Again? Huh, I didn’t even really notice. “Rob, baby, I asked you to keep your hair out of your mouth.” Allen chastises me again with a huge smile on his face. “Sorry, I truthfully didn’t even notice that I had started chewing on it again.” I apologize. “Asked me…” I mumble loud enough to be heard on purpose clearly displaying my displeasure. “Sorry babe. I just don’t want Molly to start that. Apparently, it’s at least a twenty-four year habit.” He tells me tucking my hair behind my ears on both sides of my head. It’s a sweet gesture. I loved him for it for giving me the tender reminder. His hand rests on my shoulder as he looks at Spidey’s new threads. I reach up and put my hand over his trying to push my love through the contact feeling a bit guilty about being pissed. “Cool costume remake. Eat up girls. Friday night is movie night. I’m feeling some like Dory since the second one is out. I haven’t seen it yet.” Allen. “I love Ellen. Such a sweetheart.” Me. “Nemo!” Molly squeals. “Speaking of nemo, when is the last time we did the filter sock? I think the charcoal is due too. Do we have any saltwater mixed up?” I ask Allen. “Yeah, I have like twenty gallons mixed up on your cart.” Allen. “Do you want tank work or dishes?” I ask Allen as I plate some pizza for Molly and me. “Uh… we’ll get the dishes. You fit down there better than I do anyway.” Allen fires away at our long running size joke. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 4. Allen’s nearly six and a half feet tall and a bit over two hundred fifty pounds. I likes my men big! Me, I’m pretty average at five foot three. The pediatrician is positive Molly will race after her Daddy’s height, and that I’ll soon be the shortest inhabitant of the house. Frankly, it won’t be as far away as I’d like. I’ll have a giant of a man and an Amazon of a girl around here in about ten years. “Good thing I’m close to the floor! Someone has to clean up after you you great hairy beast!” I giggle. We joke and eat till about seven thirty. Molly is practically yawning at the table. Her normal bedtime is eight. I’m antsy to have her in bed safe behind her door. I’m horney and my diaper needs my husband’s attention. We Smiths are early to rise, it’s just, Allen and I are late to bed and early to rise. When Molly is asleep is the only time we get to be a couple any more. We guard that time jealously. I wonder if we could keep up the eight o’clock bedtime even after we don’t send her to bed at that time. I could make it room time not bedtime… I mean she wouldn’t have to go to bed, just be in her room. I have no idea how successful that will be, but Damn! It’s worth trying! Weekends are the exception. Molly pretty much gets to stay up till she crashes on Friday and Saturday nights. It’s clear she isn’t going to last long today. I yawn and stretch too as I stand. I feel my nightgown lift, and just for fun I bend forward a bit making sure that I’d flash my diaper at the living room. I flush realizing I’m being more than a little bit naughty. Allen and Molly get up to work on the dishes and I head toward the living room to work on our aquarium. It’s a nice custom one-hundred and ten gallon tank I’d made. Allen is pretty handy with wood work so I “let” him help here and there. We had special glass cut for the front panels, and we siliconed our own aquarium together. I had researched for months and planned the whole tank design. It was a bit of an obsession for a while there. I can get like that, you know stuck on something. We talked it through and built both the tank and stand to make water changes and maintenance as easy as possible. So easy I could do it myself, but in the end it is still my tank. They are my fish and coral, and my responsibility. Allen and Molly love watching them, but they’d both rather leave maintenance to me and just enjoy them. Getting to work, I drop the clogged filter sock into an old butter dish and put a new one in the sump. I scrub some algae loose from the sides of the sump and the display tank. The whole time I relish in the not so private pleasure that my hidden diaper is bringing me. Allen and Molly don’t make it back into the living room until after I finish up with the tank which is a clear loss for Allen. I was flashing padded ass cheeks left and right! I sit down on the loveseat with my aquarium directly to my right. Allen comes in with popcorn and Molly is carrying some cans of pop. “Allen, you’re spoiling me!” I tell him lovingly. “There’s no one I’d rather spoil more, except maybe my princess.” He says sitting the popcorn down and hugging Molly. Soda goes right through me. I wonder if he’s figured out my diapered situation? Molly has a little bean bag chair in the rough shape of a recliner. It’s pink and covered in ponies. She pulls it up beside her father's legs. I tuck my feet up under me sitting side saddle facing the TV with the tank on my right, Allen on my left, and the hidden diaper on my butt. It is heaven for me. I pull my fleece gown up a bit so I didn’t feel like I’m trapped in the shirt. Claustrophobia inside one’s own night gown sounds goofy, but wake me up tangled like a burrito and watch me flip the hell out! I purposefully flash him my pantie clad rear end. I bet if he tries hard, he could make out the outline of the diaper in the tight material. The abstract pattern on this pair probably prevents visible edges. I smirk behind my popcorn. It’s thrilling. Sitting here diapered is so innocently naughty, so inappropriately comfortable. I wiggle around excessively trying to get comfortable. I’m purposely filling the air with crinkles. I feel like a kid again excited about the unknown parts of sex with my partner. It’s fucking amazing. This could be addictive… I ponder. Allen just has no reason to look for that sound coming from my rear end despite me being this close to him. Besides, Molly is having trouble being still and clouding the air with diaper noises. One of my true pleasures in life is people watching. Watching them fight sleep is very entertaining too, especially toddlers. She’s wiggling all over the place even shaking her head trying to stay awake. He has no real reason to believe it’s me. Nothing but the sound even connects the noises with my hidden secret. Allen just laughs while watching Molly watch the movie. We’ve seen it a million times, so we mostly “people-watch” her while she watches her favorite parts. Allen gets out his tablet and starts reading some fantasy novel or another. The man reads all the time! I keep wiggling around and smirking behind my drink and popcorn. Once he draws the connection it’ll be obvious like a blinking neon sign, but apparently not until then. I decide to up my flirty game. I stretch out my legs until they are touching Allen. He looks over at me with an inquisitive look on his face. I just smile and rub his thigh with my foot. We aren’t very adventurous in the bedroom, but neither of us were board either. We were just happy, and happy is ok too. Allen reaches down and rubs my sock covered feet. It feels heavenly and I can’t help the little moans that escape my salty lips. Damn, this feels so nice. His strong hands cause me to writhe in happiness, hidden pleasure, and with a touch of pain. Turns out, my feet are knotted up muscle mess and I really needed a message. “Mommy, u k?” Molly askes. “Yeah Doodlebug, mommies feet hurt and Daddy is fixing it. It kind of hurts, but makes me feel better when he’s done. Daddy is super strong.” I explain. My little goofball just looks at us and then uprights herself. She throws her legs over mine with her head in the seat of her chair. She’s totally upside down at this point. I cringe knowing this is going to wake her up a bit. “Daddy fix my feets too.” She asks/demands. “Mommy, I’ve only got one hand. Can I fix Molly’s feet?” Allen. “Of course Daddy will, Molly will probably feel so good she’ll fall asleep.” I tease my inverted yawning daughter. I love a foot rub, the intimate contact, the message itself. It always feels great just because someone cares enough to spend the time on me. I’ll spend the time on Allen later, and he knows it making him an eager participant. After a few minutes I have Molly sit up, “Ok Doodlebug, right yourself. You're showing your panties to God and everyone.” Molly “eeped” in that little girl way and swirls around having been totally ignorant of her exposure. Allen had rubbed her feet for a few minutes and that had relaxed her enough that she’d nearly fallen asleep upside down! Turning around like that will keep her up a few minutes longer, but it couldn’t be avoided. He resumes his one handed mission to turn my feet in the well kneaded butter, it was melting me too! I take whichever foot that he isn’t working on and keep a steady rub on his thigh. I’m craving a different kind of contact, but this will have to do for now. Molly throws a last yawn around the room before simply leaning over and falling asleep. We wait a few moments after her head goes slack in her bean bag recliner, then Allen turns off the movie. I get up slowly so as not to spook her, and clear a path through the toys in her room. Allen follows me into her bedroom after having given me enough time to clean up a bit. He lays our Doodlebug Princess down for the night. We pray over her and sneak out of her room. Closing the bedroom door is always the trickiest part with the highest risk of waking her, but we manage. I head for the living room and Allen makes for the bathroom to get his shower. I’m tip toeing around my house picking up toys, bowls, and popcorn kernels. I hear my crinkling and it just ups my arousal. A bit of a wicked thought strikes me while I’m sitting in the living room by myself. I realize that diapers are going to be a part of my life from here on out, if for nothing else, randomly injecting some fun into our love life. I’d never given them a second thought beyond protecting stuff from Molly’s leaky rear end, but I have now. I commit myself to teasing Allen with my diaper covered ass. I slip my panties down freeing the diaper. I hope this thing will stay on without my panties. God, this feels like the first time I wore lingerie. How weird is that! ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 5. I sit gingerly down on the couch. My Momma-ass spreads wider than I’d like as I sit. The tape and hook/loop tabs of the child’s diaper dig into my hips as my shape changes. Nothing pops loose, nor do I hear the sound of the hook and loop pulling free. I smile to myself and wiggle my butt a bit against the couch. I'm rewarded with the lovely crinkle that accompanies the cover of my diaper. I also hear a hook or two pop loose as I played, but the tapes don’t come off. I press my hand tightly into my hips reseating the tapes. I end up sitting out there with my panties on the floor in front of the couch wearing only my nightgown and socks. After a few moments, my head clears up and another teasing thought occurs to me. I’ve never been this forward or aggressive with my own desires. My husband is a young virile man. I’ve always been the bottleneck in our love making not the catalyst. Allen is ALWAYS ready. I smile to myself standing up and picking up my panties with my toes. I toss them in my bedroom on the floor in front of the bathroom door. I bait my trap with the best cheese a married mouse has, my vagina! I know I want to wear a better fitting diaper, and I’d be petrified of my sudden crashing desire for them if Allen hadn’t been so turned on by this situation. Instead, I giggle excited like it was my first time walking back to the living room. Something about these diapers appeals to me. Uncharacteristically, I don’t find myself over analyzing things. I realize that my anxious nature seems pacified for the moment, and I try to just relax and enjoy it like Allen is always telling me too. I’m a whole hog kind of girl. Once I decide I’m into something, I do jump in the deep end with gusto. I mean, I seriously have 3D renderings of my aquarium, sump, stand, and cabinetry that we made. Hell, I had to learn Google Sketchup to build and test everything which is a whole different obsession that grew from the simple idea of keeping fish and coral. Holy Crap! If I don’t get a handle on these new impulses I’m going to end up throwing my whole damn pantie drawer away! I’d end up filling my closet drawers with diapers! The thought just causes me to smile and wiggle my ass instead of freaking out and nibbling my finger nails like I normally would have. Running around my living room carefree and diapered is another new liberating experience for me. Allen comes in the living room in his boxers and just stops to stare at me. I’m dancing around to the music in my head and smiling to the world about my unconventional underwear. He sneaks up on me and glues himself to my backside. He’s clearly still excited from seeing me earlier. I feel a flush of heat realizing that I’m standing there in my diaper in front of him, even if he doesn’t know. I can feel the evidence of that excitement even through my padding. Just when I think my level of arousal can’t elevate, he finds a way to do it again. I can’t wait for him to discover my new… packaging. Suddenly, I’m a woman possessed. A wild thing growls out from my throat as I grind backward into my husband. I bend down to the coffee table and start my sexy Pandora station. Allen and my diaper are really pushing all my buttons. I can hear the diaper crinkle with every gyration I make. I swing my hips in time with the beat of the music teasing both of us. I feel like I’m on the edge of every nerve in my body. It’s fantastic. I feel sexy. I feel seductive, and my poor husband doesn’t even know what has overcome my normally docile demeanor. I crack a smile, Diapers are making me more bold. How screwy is that!?! Allen reaches down above my panty line and starts to inch my nightgown up my legs. He continues to wad the fabric up in his hands. I swear the crinkle seem to grow louder every centimeter the gown rises. “Suddenly, I'm all hot Hon. Just take it off me, and let's go to our room.” Me. “Your wish is my command my lady.” Allen carries on playfully. I wiggle out of my less than sexy nightgown as I turn to face him. He pulls the top over my head slowly exposing my breasts, but not the diaper. I’m too close to him for him to see it yet. I pull him into a hungry kiss continuing to distract him. I grind against his leg marveling at his muscular thighs and how they feel beneath the padding on my crotch. “Take me to bed lover.” I purr into his mouth. I think he grunts but I'm not sure. I crawl up him straddling his stomach and locking my legs around his waist. We continue to make out as I cling to him like a baby monkey. We make the night rounds shutting off lights and locking up the house in fits of amorous laughter nor breaking the long kiss. “Get me a water honey.” I growl into his mouth still undetected. Allen redirects us to the kitchen, and I grab a bottle of water as we pass by killing the kitchen lights. Suddenly, one of Allen’s skillet sized hands cups my diapered ass easily encompassing an entire cheek. He presses my pelvis against his fluffy abs, and redoubles his affections on my neck. “Oh my god.” His gravelly voice pours into my ear as he finally comprehends my diapered state. “Same one?” Allen took his turn growling. “Nope. I’m crinkly, dry, and clean.” I manage in return biting at his ear. “You put on a new one for me?” He rumbles. “I think I put it on for both of us.” I admit feeling the blush on my skin from head to toe. Allen’s other hand leaves my back and directly grabs my diaper covered tushie. All the way to the bedroom, Allen runs his hands over my new underwear. He traces every edge he can get to playing with the elastic around my legs and waist. I start to slide down my husband when as enter the bedroom, but I stop when I feel his excitement pressing against my padded kitty. If ever there is a time for a human to purr it is right fucking now! I do my best giving him a human purr against his hairy chest. Allen pulls me back up and kisses my mouth like he had before we got married. If I had any doubts, any at all, that kiss removes them. He’s totally into this! We aren’t a kinky couple, but it seems we’ve have stumbled on something a bit off of center. This whole thing is driving me wild and I’m dripping with excitement. It feels like it’s driving him wild too. We have a thing! I think smiling into Allen’s aggressive kisses. Abruptly, I’m flying through the air. I laugh arching through space grunting on impact. I hit our bed a giggly umph. A fit of laughs assault me as my large husband crawls up the bed between my legs and re-tapes my diaper where it had popped loose. It’s heavenly and I make noises to let him know I approve. Allen rises up on his knees taking in my mostly naked visage. My flushed chest heaves with the rush of excitement. I’m not the teenager I was a few years ago, and seeing that look in his eye is the most flattering thing in the world. I find myself waiting patiently for something. I just don’t know what yet. “Babe, I swear you in this diaper is the hottest thing I have ever seen.” He tells me jumping up from the bed. He grabs his phone from the nightstand where he’d left it while he showered. If Allen has a weird thing, it’s how often the man showers. Meh, we all have something! He smiles at me and nods toward his phone. Allen travels for work occasionally. I have always allowed him to take pictures of me. He keeps them on a password protected website that we both have access too, but I administrate. He’s not supposed to be able to get the pictures off there, but I trust him so I don’t lose sleep over whether he can or not. They aren’t on his phone for his buddies or employees to stumble across, and I can access it and remove the stuff I don’t like or change the password at will which I do frequently. I setup the account so that if he ever leaves me he can’t reset the password. I know he could probably get around the no download settings and save them, but I trusted him enough to marry him so... I tug the sheet across my midsection to cover my tummy. I partially obscure my chest and diaper, but this is my permission to his request to take pictures. He just smiles and starts clicking away. He poses me and snaps pictures until we can’t take it anymore. I guess he’s afraid he’ll never see me this way again and wanted the record the night for his personal time or when he was away. I don’t mind, better me than someone else as his fapping material. It always makes a girl feel powerful to turn her man on. I’d go in and crop my face out of these pictures later anyway, but for right now I get even more excited thinking about him stroking himself looking at these pictures. After what seems like forever, Allen finally touches me. I’ve been in a wanton state for so long that my little diaper is literally damp, but not because of any traffic related accidents this time. I wet this one with anticipation. He puts the phone down and crawls up in the bed to lie beside me. His hands and mouth wander everywhere. I fall in love with the sound and feel of the diaper as he plays with me. The feeling inside my diaper as he runs his fingers along the outside of the leg gathers is amazing! It is the most tantalizing thing I have ever experienced. I feel like a teenager again getting felt up for the very first time. This feeling of renewed sexuality is driving me nuts. “Time to unwrap my pretty princess.” Allen says breathlessly. Then I remember that I have another surprise waiting for him. I’m totally shaven for the first time in like four years. Depending on how he reacts, I intend to stay shaved for a good long while! It feels terrific in my diaper. “Holy Shit! Just when I thought this couldn’t get any better.” Allen looks at me lustfully and amazed. His camera is instantly in his hands again, and he is clicking away at my shaven crotch resting in my opened diaper. My hips involuntarily grind against the open air in excitement. “Take me Allen.” I insist reaching my limit. He leaves the diaper under me and assaults my kitty. After bringing me off a few times orally, Allen takes me with an animal passion. The diaper lies forgotten on the floor by the side of our bed. When we finish and roll over to our backs panting and staring at the ceiling, I decide I rather enjoy the reaction my unconventional underwear sparks in my man. That thought brings a big smile to my face. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 6. “You animal. That was perfect. I don’t think I can move.” I say sighing happily.“Yup. *pant* it was *pant* amazing. Thank you so much for wearing that for me. It must have been weird for you, but I really appreciate it. You looked so freaking sexy!”He still thinks I did that for him. He thinks that I wore the diaper because it made him horney. No wonder he took so many pictures. He thinks I'll never wear one again!“Babe, after my shower I was walking past Molly’s room and I sort of followed a pull, and put that other diaper on. You sort of caught me prancing around in it enjoying the feeling of my shaved kitty against the diaper.” I say blushing but confidently.“You mean you wore that for you and not me huh… Well, I guess I’m thankful either way, but why did you want to wear another one?” Allen.“Awe, I don’t know. They were super comfortable. It turned you on a lot. I sort of liked their feel. I felt naughty. I love turning you on.” I tick off on my fingers.“Oh yes it did.” He interrupts trailing his fingers down my side.“I don’t know. I didn’t think of wearing another one until after I finished using the first one.” I blush… again.“What do you mean baby.” Allen says wiggling his eyebrows, the old pet name implying something new between us.“I sort of wanted to see if it could hold, ya know, everything.” I mumble.“Did it?”“Almost, but those are a little small on me. When I get some that fit me better, I don’t think I’ll have that trouble.” I tell him thinking out loud with no leash on my tongue.“When you get bigger ones? This gets to happen again?” He asks in a hushed tone.“I want it to. It drove you nuts, and I was kind of already there. I can’t believe how turned on I was.” I admit.“Was that a four or five?”“We just moved her into the fives. I saw sixes at Walmart though.” I hint.“We need anything else from the store?”“List on the fridge. Whooo… Al, it’s like nine-thirty. Stay in bed.” I exhale totally exhausted.“I'll be back baby.” He chimes entirely ignoring me.“I’ll be right here then. I can’t really move yet anyway.” I yawn.He leaves the room headed for the bathroom. I, however, have trouble relaxing back into my post sex numbness. I feel restless lying there naked, but still too weak to do anything about it. I just can’t get comfortable. Something just doesn’t feel right. A smile creeps across my face. I know what I want. No, not what I want, I know what I need. I wiggle and scoot to the edge of our California king sized bed. I reach down to recover my discarded diaper, but that’s about as far as I get.I let out a breath and sort of fall asleep with my arm hanging off our bed. I don’t mean to. I had meant to put my diaper back on and curl up in the bed. Instead, I hear Allen’s phone click again. I can’t be bothered to care. He smiles at me and my eyes flitter closed again. I feel Allen put the diaper back on me. It seems like it’s easier for him get it on me than it was for me to put it on the first time. I must have stretched it out. My knees stay butterflied open and he pats my thigh standing up. I hear the door close and roll over falling back to sleep. I float halfway awake and sigh into these new unidentified emotions. I crawl my crinkly butt back up to my pillow and stretch my diminutive body out. I fall back to sleep waiting on Allen to get out back from the store. I “eep” dramatically waking up to Allen rolling my hips over and pulling me to the edge of the bed. I look into his eyes. They are still hungry for me. I grind my hips against my padding and decide that I’m getting aroused all over again. I call him to me and he takes me again. We haven’t had sex twice in one night since Molly was born. This time is amazing too, but it’s slower and more caring. My diaper doesn’t survive this go around. He rips it straight off my hips. Thankfully, it rips at the sides and doesn’t spill the inner crumbly stuff everywhere! We make slow happy easy love until we both pass out naked with Allen still inside me. Sometime around three AM, I weasel around our big bed until I my feet hit the floor and head toward my bathroom, nature is screaming at me. At that point a shower was the fastest way to go potty and clean up. I jelly leg out of the shower at half past three AM. I’m dry, freshly shaven (again), and lotioned up. I head back to the bedroom. “All clean?” Allen asks groggily.“Yup.” I smile wearing nothing but the towel on my head.Allen reaches across the bed and grabs a bag of size six Luvs diapers. There is no need to fake my smile, or try to hide how happy I am. I’m sure he'd be able to tell if I tried anyway. I just can’t figure out why I’m reacting this way.He tosses it to me and I fall even more in love with the diapers and my man. Even the dang package crinkles perfectly in my hands. I flush with happiness and anticipation, and a splash of embarrassment. He chuckles heading for another well-deserved shower.I tear open my very own stash of diapers, and can’t be happier to have them. Doodlebug isn’t going to be the only diapered princess around here anymore. I usually sleep in just my panties, but that didn't feel right with the diaper. I fish around and find one of Allen's wife-beater undershirts. I pull it over me for a top. It fits tightly across my moderate bosom. I look around a bit and notice it leaves some killer side boob!I giggle to myself and easily tug his shirt between my legs. I look a bit like I was wearing one of Molly’s snap crotch onesies. I add that to my list of things I suddenly need.Abandoning my playful thoughts, fatigue catches up with me again. I yawn a great big face splitting yawn and fall into bed. I pass out on top of the covers in wonder that he’d run off in the middle of the night for me like that. Allen turns down the air and tucks me under the covers coming after coming out of the bathroom.And that's how I wake up at about six am dying to pee again. I rub my eyes and look at my phone. No point in holding it till eight (when Molly usually wakes up on the weekends), I just decide to get up and go. I’m pretty sure I'll fall back to sleep pretty fast, I’m still pleasantly exhausted.I roll onto my back so I can scoot off my side of the bed. That movement reminds me of my diaper as I slide across the mattress. I smile and immediately and try to relax. I don’t know how much I have to go so I took about fifteen minutes to slowly fill the diaper. Hehehe yay no leaks! Slows the way to go. OMG! I should wear these just so I don’t have to get up three or four times a night!I yawn, stretch, roll to my side and pass back out. My diaper is warm and squishy as I pass out. I love it and sleep reclaims me swiftly. I wake up disoriented because my alarm hadn’t gone off. I’m flat of my back with my knees in the air. Suddenly, there is a rush of cold air against my very warm crotch. Allen is changing my diaper!He notices me looking at him, “Princess Mommy! I figured you could use some help. My shirt looks awesome on you by the way.”“Uh… That was on purpose.” I say pointing at the used diaper beside me.“Figured. On purpose for now huh?” He says patting my newly re-diapered crotch.“I wasn’t planning on wearing another one today.” I admit.“The best laid plans of mice and men oft go awry.” He teases. Allen has to work today, so I roll over happy and dry, maybe feeling a touch confused. He's gone by the time my alarm chirps at me. With Allen at work, I’m in no danger of being discovered by my three year old. I saunter into the kitchen for coffee in just his undershirt and my diaper. Lots of cream and sugar later, I sit on my side of the couch. I tug my legs up and enjoy the first few sips of my coffee. I stare at my fish tank taking my time waking up. This is my “me” time. My hand drifts to my diapered crotch and an evil grin slides across my face.Behind my smile, I ponder my new underwear and my wardrobe. If I wear something tight everyone would know. If I wear something too loose I'll have the sound to contend with.Too bad I don't have any button crotch leotards. I could wear diapers with a skirt or slacks. I could wear jeans, but I hate to do that for work…I can’t believe I’m even thinking about wearing a diaper out of the house!I sit there staring at my fish swimming around and go through my closet in my mind. I have dressed my diapered Doodlebug for the better part of four years, but never paid the slightest bit of attention to hiding her diapers. I suppose there were handicap people everywhere around me wearing them that I haven’t noticed. So, it can be done…Just have to try things till I figure it out. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 7. By the time I finish my coffee, I have a choice of clothes firmly in mind. I’ll have to try on a few things to make sure, but I think I have Monday figured out too. That takes care of diapers with casual and work clothes, well if they work!I rinse my number one Mom cup, fill the coffee pot back up with coffee grounds and water, and absentmindedly scratch at my diaper. Stretching, I reach over and set the timer for tomorrow morning. I want to kiss that coffee pot every morning when she greets me with that rich drink of happy morning goodness!God bless you morning happiness fairy!I take my time heading to my bedroom simply enjoying the sound of my diaper crinkling in the silent house. Sitting on the edge of my bed, I comb out my hair. I follow my normal morning routine only I do it diapered.A bit later in my bathroom, I wash my face and brush my teeth still lounging in Allen's shirt. I eventually resin myself to getting on with my day. I pat my diapered butt and head over to my closet.Let’s do this!I reluctantly slip out of his shirt and into my pants suit. I want to see how my work clothes fit first. I’m not super interested in any well-meaning three year old assistance while re-designing my wardrobe around my new diapers, so I want to get this done while Molly is still drooling on her pillow. A few giggles and a stray thought or two hit me. I might actually want to wear a diaper to work. What the hell? I have an office meeting Monday morning I’d forgotten about. At least I could fight off the drowsiness knowing what was under my suit…I’m constantly in business meetings including several video conferences. They happen every day whether I’m in the office or telecommuting. My whole team knows I’m working from home these days, but I still feel compelled to maintain business appropriate dress, so my infrequent trips into work don’t change my daily routine much other than the drive in and out of town. I twist and turn checking my pantsuit from several angles in my dressing mirror. The small diaper doesn’t disrupt the drape of the material. The pants are much better at hiding my diaper than I’d have thought. My perky boobs leave tremendously flattering cleavage staring back at me in the mirror from the confines of my suit jacket. I’ll need a peach onesie to tie this all together. But I still feel sexy as hell.Happy with the suit, I switch into some jean shorts and a tank top taking time to put on a light coating of makeup. I stretch my arms over my head and see the diaper peeking out over the top of my low cut shorts. I tuck in the tank top to prevent accidentally flashing the world. The peek-a-boo my diaper was doing draws my attention again to onesies and their practicality. It’s finally time to get Molly rolling. I repeat much of my prep time on her, minus the coffee and makeup! I dress her in her onesie and a skirt, because that's what I'd rather be wearing! I make mental notes on how easy that would be to change my own diaper.“Where’s Daddy?” Molly asks me.“He had to work a bit today. He’ll be home around lunch Molls.”“K, Can I has a poptart Mommy?”“Yeah, orange juice or apple?”“Apple.” She asserts.I make some toast and slather some strawberry jam to go with a glass of orange juice. I take Molly a piece of toast and jam with her poptart. Her tummy is legendarily fickle. Molly isn’t fully woken up yet and sort of spaces out while eating her poptart. I want to grab a couple of leotards today. It’d be ungrateful to be mad at Allen, but I wish he’d have gotten the Wal-mart list last night. It seems he only got the one “vital” thing. I giggle. I need to run by PetSmart for some fish food too.I continue to plan a morning of running errands and scheduling the stops where I won’t lose Molly’s attention. She’s a great kid, but if she gets tired and board… Well, she can get pretty whiney. That’s not my favorite version of Molly to run around town with! We finish up breakfast and clean up after ourselves. Molly seems set on a real effort at “big girl” today. She brings me all the dishes and insists on helping me rinse them and put them in the dishwasher. Molly skips and sings lyrics from Frozen while we finish up.Cute little thing! These are the kinds of mornings you remember your whole life. I feel a twinge in my bladder. My coffee is making its way through me already. Coffee and soda have always had a fast track through my bladder, but it’s been worse since Molly was born.“Doodlebug, why don’t we set you up some TV? Mommy’s gotta potty.” I tell her in third person.Why do we do that? I think deciding I need to invest some pronouns on Molly’s education. [Me] Need anything not on the list? Molls and I are hitting the stores. You may beat us home. I text Allen leaving Molly with Frozen playing while I took off for the bathroom. I don’t expect a return text. Allen will be working hard to finish working so he can get home to us. I realize that I’m headed to the bathroom while wearing one. It’s a more than a little ironic and I laugh at myself. I freeze in the middle of my bedroom. I work to relax my bladder giving my body permission to relieve itself. Which, as it turns out, is super hard to do. I go a bit but can’t fully release. Making my way to Molly’s bedroom, I allow dribbles out between my stepw. I pack her diaper a bag and head back toward the living room. The diaper is quiet enough in the jean shorts that I don’t notice my own sounds. I approach the living room and pause. Should I wear one to the store? God, I can’t believe I was about to leave the house in a wet diaper. I put off the decision and yell at Molly that I have her bag packed and am heading to the bathroom. She’s snuggled up to Olaf on the couch watching her movie and yells back an “ok” at me. Standing in front of my mirror, I shuck my jean shorts and stare at myself in my tank top and diaper. I can see the number six proudly telling the world that it’s mine. The diaper is tight, but I can fit in a baby diaper! These don’t seem near as apt to pop loose either, but they don’t offer full butt cheek coverage, so that’s a minus. On an impulse, I stick my thumb in my mouth, but that immediately feels wrong. I yank it out and wipe it off almost violently. I pose sexily in front of the mirror feeling much more natural in my skin with the thumb out of my mouth. Nope, that’s not for me for sure. I adore how this feels, even soggy. But, I don’t want to sit around with my thumb in my mouth like Molls does. I’m a big girl. I don’t think about it anymore. I untape the diaper and throw it in the bathroom trash the mood being slightly spoiled with my thumb experiment. I squirt some air freshener directly into the trashcan and finish my business in the toilet. Back in my bedroom, I slide a yellow pair of boyshort panties up my legs with a winking smiley face settling on my butt.I pull my shorts back up my legs ready to start my day. Dressed like an adult, I approach my daughter in the living room. I shove my cell phone in my back pocket and grab my purse shouldering Molly’s bag. Entering the living room, I have a sudden change of heart and race off to Molls room to change out her bag. She can be a big girl too. It’s time she starts hauling her own crap around. I’m no pack mule! Plus, she needs some more dignity. I stuff a skirt, some wipes, and a couple size fives in the tiny backpack I’d bought her. It looks like a tiny pink canvas hiking backpack, suitability girly and less childlike. In fact, I bought it because it looks a lot like my business laptop bag. “Here you are Doodlebug. Mommy, er… I mean ‘I’ packed your bag so you can carry it like M… er ‘I’ carry my purse!” I tell her excitedly tripping over my new resolution to introduce some pronouns.“K Mommy! Mowwy wubs it!” I can almost hear Allen correcting her. Nope, I’m not going to do it. She’s too cute. She doesn’t ever need to grow up! Lord knows she’ll never have a sibling! I don’t suffer from the labor amnesia like some women do, and the changes in my body are to pronounced to risk it again. Molly trundles over to me and I slip the backpack over her arms cinching up the straps sizing it to her little back. Molly sways a bit as she adjusts to the weight. She looks like she’s headed out for a super cute hike. I smile widely appreciating my daughter. I’m just happy she’s mine and it makes my heart melt. I snatch her up, backpack and all, cradling her little diapered butt on my arm hugging the life out of her. I kiss her all over her face tickling her with my bangs.“Stop Mommy! It tickles!” “Never!” “Mommy!” “Muah, Muah, Muah” “Mommy! I’m gonna pee!” “Muah”“Mom….eee”“One too many tickly kisses huh? Someone’s butt is warm!”“Meeee!”“No worries Doodlebug. That’s what your diapers are for honey.” That’s what He said! I quip internally thinking of Allen.“I know.” “Let’s get you all cleaned up Molls.” I sit her down and take her hand. We head to Molly’s room for a quick dry-butt. Molly is flat of her back and I’m tugging her new diaper up between her legs when my own crotch feels the absence of a diaper. A sudden charge of jealousy rushes through me. So, I finish her change quickly and we finally make our way out of the house.Holy Shit! What the hell was that!“Molly, baby. Today we have several stops to make ok? The last one is the pet store though. You can see the kitties! Well, you can see them if you’re a good girl for Mom… eh, me.” “Kitties! Me want the Kitties!”I get her buckled in the car and we make our way to the mall. It’s the first time I have been back in my car since I wet Molly’s diaper. I certainly feel its absence the jealousy lingering despite my wishes. Molly talks about kitties all the way to the store. I wish Allen wasn’t allergic. Molly would take such good care of cat. She’d be a terrific kitty mommy!I change my mind and we make our way to Walmart first. I grab some supplies for Molly and some things for the house. In the pharmacy area, I grab some new eye liner and get Allen his sport scented spray deodorant. I have crossed everything off the house list that isn’t food except pads. I always wear a pad these days. My tiny bladder just ain’t what she used ta be, not after Molly. I have my hand on one of Playtex’s assorted boxes when I see Poise Maximum Absorbency Incontinence Pads. My hand shakily moves toward the package. I didn’t think of that. I can get away with these can’t I? I giggle to myself.I pick up the package and then reach back down to grab another. I decided that these could do for work and everyday life. Even if I am caught wearing them, I’m expected to be! I’m about to leave when my eye catches something right there next to those pads. I see the Depends Maximum Overnight Protection. My bottom lip tucks between my teeth. I bite down working it nervously. My palms turn clammy and my heart races. I feel drawn to them. “Mommy. Da mobies stopped.” Molly says jolting me from the stupor.I reach out and take my phone reloading YouTube Kids. I literally shake my head trying to free myself of the gravitational pull of that ridiculous green package. It won’t be denied though. My eyes move of their own accord. With Molly distracted, my hands move rotating my shoulders. I grasp the small size and rotate the bag. The waist size seems ok. They feel amazing. The bag itself feels like a diaper within a diaper. It has an amazing rubbery plastic feel and a marvelous sound. I feel drawn to it like a starving survivor to a juicy cooked steak. I re-arrange the cart hiding the diapers around between the boxes of pads. We grab several things and cover the contents of the cart. I haven’t found the courage to walk out with my head high and proud holding a package of diapers. Nope, not yet. We make our way to the check out and then to the car while I try not to die of embarrassment. I load up the trunk swapping out my stash of car pads in the console and my purse with my new ones. We drive to our next stop, the mall! Molly and I make our way to the family bathroom where I change her and she stands in the stall with me facing the door watching YouTube on my phone. I grab on of the incontinence pads and swap it out with the lightly damp thin panty liner that I have on. I poke at the pad and notice that it’s slightly longer than the back of my panties. I adjust the pad forward so that it won’t make any unplanned appearances while we are shopping. I tug up my shorts and freshly lined panties. God, this feels just like my diaper only with better sides. I wonder if I can use these like a diaper?I wiggle my butt and stand and sit a few times.Good, I can’t hear these any more than my Luvs. “Mommy, zat a diaper?” “No Molls. It’s a pad for grown up girls.” “K”Molly thought she had me cornered, but when I denied that the pads are diapers she believed me and lost interest quickly. Staring at the phone, Molly froze for a moment.My baby just peed I’ll bet.I reach down and check her formerly fresh diaper finding it slightly squishy.“Sorry Mommy.” Molly says sniffling. “That’s what they’re for Princess.” I tell her ruffling her hair. We make our way to the sink where we wash our hands. Then I stand her on sink to freshen up my makeup and let her play in the mirror a bit. Feeling fully “put together”, I wet my hands and tame Molly’s fuzzy thin hair. Hand in hand we make our way to Claire’s.“Mommy! Mommy! Can I has dis?”“May I have this?” I correct.“May I has dis.” She tries. “Give it here. Let me see it.” The cute knit hat has some wireframe kitty ears covered in plastic gems. The little hat is amazingly adorable. I cave because it’s cute and we really are here to distract Molly for a bit. I let her wear it around the store with the tag hanging off. Molly just holds things up meowing at me the rest of the time in Claire’s. She has me cracking up by the time we leave. “Next stop is JCPenny Molls. Mommy needs some new shirts like yours.” God! Why am I so excited to about this shit? This pad is bigger than my diaper was. I shimmy my hips playing with the humongous pad between them while walking through the mall holding Molly’s hand. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 8. I change Molly at JCPenny before we start shopping, she had clearly wet several times.Look Molls, I get it. They are comfortable. It’s hard for you. If kids wouldn’t make fun of you, I wouldn’t even ask you to worry about using the potty baby. I’m sorry. I really do believe it’s best for you in the long run. Mommy knows it’s hard to make it when your body doesn’t cooperate. “Listen Molls. Are you listening?” “Yeah Mommy.”“Baby, you have to try and use the potty. It’s an important part of growing up to be a big girl. Do you understand?”“Mommy, you said dats what der for?” She asks me. “I know, baby. It’s… well, that is what they are for. If you have an accident, it’s ok. Maybe just tell Momm… I mean me if you have an accident. Tell me. Accidents are ok. You can’t stop those.”“I jus happens. Poof and potty in my pants.” Her arms gesticulate.“And that’s fine baby, your right. That’s what your diapers are for. Just tell me when it happens so I know, and don’t use your diapers if you can find a potty. Ok?”“OK.” Molly says defeated. “I don’t like da potty.” She mutters under her breath. Why do I feel dirty? I know it’s important for her. Gah! Being the Mom sucks sometimes!I grab a cart and pick Molls up putting her in the child’s seat. She’s engrossed in my phone while I wander the isles. I need some leotards, the snap crotch ones specifically, but the labels call them bodysuits now.Whatever, they’re onesies! I think reading a tag on a top.“Look Mommy, el-la-lants is weally stwong!” She points at the video about elephants she’s watching.“El-ah-phants” I articulate. We aren’t hurting for money, but I grew up frugal and I always will be. I browse for sales eyeballing cute tops while we make our first pass in the store. There are several designs with various necklines and some with lace around the collar. I move back through all the tops. My eyes land on my new favorite top. I fall in love immediately. It is a blue velvet bodysuit by Arizona with several lacey strings crossing over the cleavage creating a beautiful design. I drape one over the cart along with a few others, including a set of five plain white ones from the underwear section. We head off to the dressing rooms so I can try on these new onesies. The closer we get, the more excited I find myself. Raising Molly is full of Awe inspiring moments, but I’ve been through some stuff college, falling in love, getting married, buying a house, working in marketing, being a stay at home mom, and a part time mom/work from home employee. I’m sure I still have a lot of experiences left to discover in life, but everything about my diapers seems to be thrilling me in new and exciting ways. It’s a bit like re-experiencing my own life with a new filter on the movie, like re-watching black and white memories in full technicolor.Even this simple act of trying on adult clothing that functions the same as Molly’s toddler clothes is exciting me. I hurry into a stall closing and locking the door. I check the bench for lingering push pins and sit Molly down starting a game on my phone. I try on the peach onesie I got for work Monday. Ok. Cool. It fits. Let’s button this thing up. Huh, I can feel the snaps. Don’t like that. You will be wearing a diaper there’s no way you will be able to feel them then. Oh yeah!God, the cut on these are different than Molls. Sexier. Thinner in the crotch. Higher in the hips. I hope the velvet one fits better. My diaper will hang out all over in this one.I run my hands over the crotch of the shirt protected from my smooth skin by a layer of yellow smiley faced hipster panties and a thin pad. I can feel the ridges in my finger print bumping over the ribbed material of the top through the panties on my shaved crotch. OMG! That’s so erotic. Even covered in two layers of fabric and a thick pad, I feel naked to the touch. This is fucking amazing. I can’t wait to feel my diaper pressed in tightly with these. Ok, God please let this fit. I thought grabbing my favorite velvet top.I try on the top. The snaps hit a little further forward than the peach one. It’s far more comfortable than the first one I’d tired on. It comes down over my hips following my hipster panty line pretty closely. I spin in the mirror adjusting the straps on the top tying the fanciest bow I could manage leaving the string hanging low over my boobs.I love it when my favorite is the best. My girls look amazing in this. I push them together, pull them apart, and lift them high and low. Who doesn’t love a top that looks this good no matter where my boobs roam off to! This may be my favorite top in my whole closet! My God this velvet feels so good.Wonder how it’d feel without a bra? I file that thought away for later.I decide to wear the top out leaving the tags on it. I’d never reacted badly to new clothes, so I wasn’t concerned about wearing it out of the shop. The cashier smiles at me scanning the tags under my arm along with the rest of my clothes. She can tell I was in love with the top and compliments me on how it looks on me while asking my “kitty” tons of cat questions. Turns out Molly likes the taste of field mice the best… HA!I’m very much excited to get home. I look down at my watch seeing it is now about eleven twenty. We head to the car with our bags of goodies hand in hand. Molly looks so grown up. My tall little Doodlebug looks twice her age with her height and the backpack, like a grade schooler off to conquer the world. How tall will my little amazon be when she’s really eight, thirteen, twenty? “I love you Doodlebug.” I sniff.“Whaz wrong Mommy?”“Nothing Molls. I was just thinking you look like a beautiful big girl instead of my tiny baby girl.” “Yup. Imma big girl”“Gettin there huh?” I chuckle ruffling her hair. “Mommy I’m wet K?” “Did you have an accident? Let me see how bad.” “You’ll make it till we get home.” “It was a hack-sa-dent Mommy. I didn’t know till I was goin.”I need to pee too Doodlebug. Should I? Allen won’t care, even if I make a mess. Can these pads really hold up?We leave the mall and head for AquaWorlds, our local fish store. I promised Molly kitties. I’ll have to take her to PetSmart on the way home. I resign myself to two more stops instead of one. PetSmart doesn’t have the saltwater fish food that I need though. I’m always forgetting that. The aquarium care stuff is cheaper there, but I only need the saltwater shrimp for feeding the tank today.Well, honestly. The second stop at PetSmart would keep me from buying anything at AquaWorlds. Hey! If you don’t keep fish, you can’t understand how hard it is to walk out without a new fish, coral, or piece of equipment!Inside AquaWorlds, I prowl through their coral frags and make my way to the refrigerated shelves. I deny the impulse to add some new coral to my tank and just get the frozen shrimp. I pay for my purchases and we make our way toward the house stopping only for a few minutes for Molly to poke the adoptable kitties through their cages. She gabs on about the kitties all the way home. Pulling up at the house, I see Allen’s truck, he has beaten us home. Getting out, I finally stop to check my phone. I’d missed a couple texts from him. They aren’t anything important though, so I text him we are home and could use his help.Opps. I’ve been known to get pissed at him for that move.Standing up, I begin emptying my bladder into my inco-pad. I certainly don’t mean to. It’s one of the things I contend with now. This is the reason my panties are always lined. Instead of standing there concentrating on flexing all my muscles until I regain control, I boldly take a step forward around Molly’s open car door ignoring my leaking lady bits. Reaching my leg out for the next step releases a big spurt of pee. The small squirt and pinch move I usually pull in these situations isn’t working. Frankly, I didn’t want it to. I hold back enough that I don’t flood the pad, but every step and flex releases some tiny bit of urine. It actually feels really good not to have to worry about standing in my yard in wet shorts because of the pad. This is one of the little gifts Molly’s trip through my body left me, and it’s one of the reasons I don’t have labor amnesia like some women. I have constant biological reminders of the cost of motherhood. I don’t see as well and had to get glasses! On a positive note, I haven’t had the period-migraines since I had Molly, and I’d had them since puberty started a decade ago. That is sort of amazing to be honest.Pregnancy is still a miraculous thing. My doctor told me that pregnancy doesn’t cause these changes like the eye sight and migraine stuff, not medically. Then he went on to tell me dozens of stories about body adjustments that some of his patients had gone through after pregnancy, some temporary and some, like me, permanent. Peeing myself when I don’t feel like I have to go, just because I decide to change my personal elevation, that seems a bit extreme to me. It happens to me nonetheless. I feel the texture of my pad changing from fibrous to jelly between my legs. I decide to let my body evacuate whatever it feels like is necessary, but try to keep a heavy wetting out of the picture. I force myself not to fight the piddles. It’s a word I coined for myself. It’s what I call these little wetting episodes that just really fucking brighten my day. Ever hear of the walking farts? Well, I have the walking piddles. I take Molly’s hand and lead her, wearing her backpack diaper bag, into the house with the frozen food from the local fish store. I finally stop the piddling and plunk her down on the couch with my phone. Allen comes out of our bedroom at about the same time. I shake my head at the small fortune we spend on water for his showers.“Hi girls! Did you have a good time shopping?” Allen asks kissing my neck. “We did, huh Molls?” I ask looking at her over my shoulder.“Yup, Meow” “Did you get a kitten while you were out Mommy?” “I did! Isn’t she great!?!”“She’s not house broken though.” I whisper loudly giving her a hard time.“Moom eeee!” Molly whines like a teenager. “Wow, learn that move early don’t you girls?” Allen asks me.“The Sass is Strong in this one.” I nod sagely.“You dropping Star Wars puns is hot.” Allen says causing me to blush. Allen pats my butt while our kid is fully engrossed in an episode of SpongeBob on my phone. She’s safely distracted so we can run in and out of the house. He kisses my ear. I sigh happy and turn resting on his chest. Then I straighten up and smack his chest. “Is anyone wet today?” “Allen! Seriously!” I shout exasperated. “I un know.” Molly slurs together.“How bout Mommy? Was she a good girl? Did she keep her diaper dry?” “I did no such thing you turd!” I huff walking toward the door embarrassed to my core.“I had a hack-sa-dent Daddy. Mommy used da potty like a big giwl. She buied big giwl diapers.” “I bought Pads Molly. Pads.” I say forgetting the Depends I’d picked up altogether.“Oh relax honey. It’s ok. I love my girls whether they are wet or dry!” Allen teases.“Stay put Molly. Daddy and I will be right back. We’re just going to the car to get our stuff.” I say dragging Allen outside.“Don’t be mad baby.” Allen pleads sensing my mood.Sigh “I’m not mad Allen, well maybe a little. What we do in the bedroom doesn’t have anything to do with Molly’s little reality. Plus, you don’t go embarrassing me anymore.” I fix him with my don’t-push-mom look. “To be perfectly clear, that’s not a request. It’s an expectation. This is for me and you and no one else. I’m a lady regardless of my clothing choices, and I won’t be belittled!” “Robin, baby, I’m really sorry. I was just playing. I wasn’t trying to hurt your feelings. It was stupid and I’m really sorry.”I let him stew in his own remorse just to reinforce the point I’m making. I may not do a lot of off-center stuff in the bedroom, but come on Internet. I know, at least on the surface, what a submissive is. I am not one of those. I may be meek and a bit humble, but I’m no one’s floor matt. No offense to those who get off on that, but that ain’t me boy-o. I think and throw an angry eyebrow at Allen. I grab my shirts filling up my arms and head back into the house. ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 9. Dumping my clothes on the bed, I begin sorting out my new tops by color. I drop the white ones in my whites laundry basket, and the colors I decide to wash individually with a couple older towels each on tiny load settings. No sense in lettings these fade over something I already own.I make several mini-laundry piles and lug them into the laundry room. I decide to start the whites with some bleach first. The water begins filling while I add the bleach, but I discover a problem when I bend over to grab the white load. Apparently, I still need to pee quite a bit. I decide to put these pads to the test.No better room than the only one with a floor drain!I take a wide legged stance and relax my bladder, or try to. I fail. It’s not so much a factor of permission, but a matter of forcing muscles that I don’t EVER think about to open. I guess that’s the thing though. Maybe being flexed shut is the relaxed state for those bladder control muscles. If that’s the case, it’s a bit like doing a bladder pushup! I make a mental note to look that up. Interesting theory. I decide It’s really a mind over matter type thing. I envision a Sci-Fi type scene of casting my consciousness down the nerve synapsis to the bundles controlling my bladder. With the piddles always on the horizon, I have perhaps a stronger connection to my troubled bladder muscles than most people do. I envision my bladder as a hand tightly clasped holding something in.I lean forward bracing myself on the washing machine angling my body in a new way while trying to tug those mental fingers loose. I finally feel my control loosen and I begin to wet the incontinence pad. Suddenly, I’m releasing a full wetting onto the pad, but it’s like the pad doesn’t even try keep up.My hipster panties plus this type of pad don’t make a good pairing. The pad itself stays in a circular shape instead of flattening out gathering correctly. Apparently, I need some full on tighty-whitey granny panties. I don’t know if it fails because of being a crappy product, or because I wasn’t wearing correctly either way the pad definitely fails. I feel the pee trailing down my leg and “eep” shocked back into action. I shuck my tennis shoes and strip my socks off tossing them in the washing machine with the whites. I stand over the drain as my body finishes the business I started not having any options.Sadly, I strip out of my new favorite top that’s now soggy in the crotched. I rinse it in the utility sink and drop some water over the floor using a towel to clean up my mess. When Allen finds me a few moments later, I’m still standing there in my yellow smiley assed panties with a totally soggy incontinence pad soaked so badly it looks like it just phoned in the effort, I mean come on! “Hey Babe. Ooo, Boobs!” Allen says taking a good thirty seconds or so to notice anything else.“Shit.” I grumble when he eventually looks down.“Everything ok over there Princess?”“Awesome…” I threw him a you’re-a-dumbass eyebrow. He waves his hands, “Alright I give!” “Do you need any help Rob?”“I rinsed my top and threw my socks ‘n shoes in the whites.” I say pointing at the washer. “So what happened here? An accident?”“No… an experiment. A failed one.” “What didn’t work?”“Well, I got a new heavy wetting pad to see if I could sort of wear a diaper, but not really.”“Ok”“I piddled a lot when I got out of the car, you know… like I do.”“That’s what your pads are for baby. I really don’t care that you dribble.” “I know. I love you for it too.” I say meaning it while straddling the drain in the laundry room.“I thought this was the safest place to test em.” “I’d have went with the shower…”“Well, damn. I had to go and NOT think of that.” I admit a bit defeated.“Meh, no worries looks like you already cleaned it up.” “I was just going to strip and shower really fast. I’ll wash these panties with one of these loads.” “I’ll take care of that. You just flash me those gorgeous butt cheeks and scoot out of here.”“Allen, you don’t have to. I’m not some kid.”“Well, you certainly are playing at it.” He smirks.“Wipe that look off your face or I’ll kick your ass.”“Ma’am, Yes Ma’am.” He salutes.“God you’re impossible.” I say stripping. “Nah, I’m amazing. I clean up after wet girls around here all the time.”“A wet toddler maybe…”“Nope, I washed your wet stuff yesterday too.” “I… Oh… I… I was going to do that. You didn’t have to.” “Well, I don’t get off on handling your pee or anything, but your accidents don’t repulse me either. You certainly never will!”“Fine, you can be out of the dog house.” I tell him turning to him naked as the day I was born.“I’m going to shower. Did you get the rest of the stuff out of the car?” “Yep. On the counter.” “Will you run a kitchen wipe with bleach on the floor between here and the washer?” “Already planned to. I’ll put the rest of the bags on the bed.”“You can return or throw away those bags of pads. Even if I could figure it out, I’ll never trust them now.”“Done. I’ll just toss em. Not worth the gas or my time to take ‘em back. We should stick them all over something and then take a funny picture.” He jokes. “We’ll do no such thing. My totally manageable leaky issue and my new found love of thick underwear is no one’s business but ours mister!” I say getting a little heated again.“Sorry, not what I meant. Just thinking of that kid from AFV covered in pads the other day.”“Nope. Trash or take back. That’s your options. No negotiation.” “Trash it is!” I leave the laundry room running on my tip toes like a spooked deer. I’m genuinely upset that the pads didn’t work and that my new favorite top is in the laundry room in the sink. I totally stomp off to the bathroom pissed the hell off, just not at Allen, this time!I take my time cleaning myself and lotioning up my skin. When I get out of the shower I fix my hair and do a light coating of makeup. I feel the need to look my best for Allen after him seeing me in the laundry, all boobs out and wet panties. That’s not the look I want to foster! I paint my nails and toe nails too. By the time I’m done, I look like I’m ready to go dancing or for a night out doing something young and fun. Perfect, I think looking in my mirror. This is exactly the level of nice that I’m looking for! I look around in my Tee-Shirt drawer for something cute that will go with my nails. I find a purple My Little Pony shirt that I bought to match one Molly just had to have a few months ago.I feel like a cute day! I can be cute and sexy too. I love it. Ooo, I’ll put my hair up too!I tease my hair into a cute dangling updo with floppy bangs. It feels summery, light, and cute. I scratch at my chest and cup my breasts. I let them fall back to their resting position and smile at myself. It was a hard fight back to this shape after Molly, and I’m a bit proud despite a little remaining pudge. Naked below my shirt, I sit on my bed trying to decide what my bottom half should look like for the rest of the day. I know I want to wear a diaper. So there’s that. I guess I need to decide what I can wear with this top that will help me hide my diaper. I pilfer through my closet and the bottom drawer in my dresser. I sit out a few pieces, but struggle making up my mind. I rest my hand on my hip cocking it out to the side while I stare at my bed. My door pops open startling me. “Ahhh!” “Shhh… It’s just me baby.” “Damn honey. Scared the shit out of me.” I say resting a hand over my throbbing heart.“Didn’t mean to.” “I’m ok now.” I smile at him half naked. “You look amazing.” He smiles at me lecherously. I turn fully to him displaying my fuzz free goodies. Allen smiles the sight. I sashay over to him wiggling my hips as I walk. He stands there mesmerized by my movements. “Hey babe. I can’t decide what to wear over my diaper.” I tease.“I’m ok with nothing!” He gets a well-deserved really eye for that, but knowing him he probably thought it was worth it. “Allen…” “Bah fine. You know I wasn’t serious. I just hate to cover you up. I could stare at you all day.” “Well, we decided to have a child so… no day long ass staring for you.”“I like the new packaging anyway. Speaking of. May I?”“Please.” I giggle and move the baggy overalls I set out further up the bed. Allen takes my ankles and tugs me closer to the edge of the bed. I close my eyes to focus on the feelings. This isn’t the first time my husband has diapered me, today even, but this is the first time I am awake enough to focus on it, to enjoy it. He spreads my legs at the knees leaving then laying open like butterfly wings. My shaven kitty stares up at Allen, and I feel the air caressing my delicate places. His hands trace up my ankles gliding up the insides of my legs. They spread outward at my hips reaching under me to cup my ass tracing the back of my legs pulling them together. I moisten enjoying the luxurious feeling of Allen’s rough hands on my skin. He raises me off the bed far enough to slide a diaper under me. Immediately, I feel that this diaper is bigger than I expected. I resist the urge to open my eyes enjoying the sensory deprivation. May have to add a blindfold to the naughty drawer! ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 10. Allen fits up my diaper tugging it around to center it. This one’s incredibly crinkly. I focus my ears listening to every noise it produces. Finally, he tugs on my diaper pulling it down to the right level on my butt. I feel the diaper gathers tugging at the creases between my ass and legs as Allen pulls the diaper up. He lays the front of the diaper over my crotch and I know it’s not one of my Luvs. Struggling to keep my eyes closed, Allen cups my crotch to see where the front waist will lay. His hand shifts to my waist holding the diaper in the center. My man’s a diapering professional… mhmmmm He tucks the left front side in around my hip and tugs the back over the front panel. Allen abandons his hold on the middle of my waist, and tugs the front side for a tighter fit. He repeats the process on the other side completing the fitting. I wiggle my ass in this larger diaper enjoying the feeling of a properly sized one. It tugs and pulls in the directions of the tapes and across my waist. It feels amazingly tight and secure. I pinch my legs together bunching the diaper up between them. It crinkles seductively as I move my legs like a cricket. Allen parts my legs and lies lightly on top of me. He kisses my heart up into my throat. I drape my arms around his neck and peck his cheek. “Babe, Molly.” I say pushing him up smacking at his chest and standing up. “What am I wearing?” I ask looking down at my fully diapered ass. “I don’t know, I didn’t look. They were in the bag with your trash pads.” “Oh, I forgot I bought those. I was too pissed at the pads. I thought you’d bought me something.”“Bawahahaha!” Allen laughs. “What’s so funny?”“You said pissed at your pads that you just peed in.” “Oh pissed, I didn’t mean that as a joke. I get it.” “Oh crap… still funny though.” “Hey before you go… what bottoms?”“Uh…” He stalls looking his options over. “Oh! The overalls for sure. No doubt.” Allen takes off for the living room to check on our little Phone Zombie. I stand up and run to the full length mirror in the closet. I spin, turn, jump, bend, and gaze at myself in the mirror. I feel awesome. I feel sexy and desirable, and I feel fucking silly. I shrug off the silly and just go with happy. I tug the overalls up and clip the bibs in place. I check myself in the mirror again. I haven’t purposefully dressed cute in a good long while. I have to actually work at looking my age. An older looking girl stares back at me in the mirror. She’s a cute girl, maybe in her late. She sure doesn’t look like a mid-twenties mother! I giggle behind my hand and clap. I jump a few times feeling my bouncy bangs dance around my face. I laugh and bend over touching my toes. I can hear the diaper crinkling away loudly. It’s not as prolific as it was before I put on the overalls, but I can hear it more than I’m comfortable with. Oh, I love how this feels. God, my hips are getting a clammy already though. Gonna have to fix that. I head toward the door pondering the clammy heat around my waist and notice the noise the diaper is making is beyond my tolerance. Yeah, nope… not running around crinkling this much. Hmmm… What to do? I think tapping my chin. I go back to the laundry room inspired. I pull one of my new tops off of a pile of laundry. Pulling a baby blue onesie over my head thrills me. The cut of the onesie leaves it poking out around the collar of my shirt with the overalls, in turn, covering up the decal on pony shirt. Ultimately, I decide to peel off the pony shirt throwing in the load I’d pulled the blue onesie from after fastening up my overalls. I make my way back toward my bedroom having spent a totally conspicuous amount of time by myself at this point. I feel like I need to hurry and get out there with my family but walking by Molly’s room, I catch a whiff of baby powder and ammonia. The smell of pee is there, but faint. The biggest smell is the baby powder. I tip-toe in there and grab one of her many containers of baby powder. Back in my room, I slide my overalls down my ankles and unbutton my snap crotch pulling it up under my chin. I poof out some powder into my hand lightly coating powder around my own hips. Oh, now that’s better. Seems to be breathing fine where the padding is heavy… weird! Better run my hand around my belly too. Nice! This is… OMG! I can’t believe how good it feels to wear a diaper that really fits me! Hell, this may even be a bit too big. Better poof my pussy too! I button my blue onesie wishing I hadn’t gotten the whites load going first. I could have worn the pony shirt. I don’t like the blue with my purple nails, but the Pony top worked great with them. I pull up my overalls and button the bib leaving my feet bare. Girl’s gotta show off dem toes! I laugh at myself wiggling them in the carpet. I really stare at myself in my mirror getting ready to leave my room. I see a toned seventeen year old version of myself staring back. The baggy overalls and the updo really bring down my age. My loud purple eyeshadow also shaves off another year or two. I love the dangling brown curls framing my face. My dark eyes look a little moody and mysterious with the darker eyeshadow. I look like an Emo teenager trying to dress like a little girl… I giggle at my image. It’s ironic that in reality, I’m a twenty-four year old mother who looks like a teenage lady trying to dress like a twelve year old girl. Even given the visual Mobius strip I’m creating, I feel as sexy as hell. It is very odd to look in the mirror at the image I cut, and yet feel as sexy as a nearly naked cat girl on Halloween! I trust-fall onto my bed and roll around a little bit. The noise from the Depends is considerably lessoned with my onesie. With the TV on, or any background noise at all, the crinkle will totally fade away. I should probably feel guilty, but everyone will just assume its Molly, even if they hear something. Well, except at work…hahaha! I stood pausing just a moment at the outrageous thought. I have a hard time imagining wearing a diaper of any kind at work, and yet, an equally hard time going that long without one. I can’t tell if I feel out of control, or that I’ve already accepted this as something I want. It’s a pleasant coincidence that Allen seems to be getting off on it. At least we can be strange together! “What do you guys want for lunch?” I ask the living room where Molly is playing ABC Mouse while Allen reads away on his Galaxy tablet. At least THAT has some educational value. I think watching her tap away at her alphabet. Occasionally, I feel guilty about her tech time. All the “Pros” at raising kids tell you exactly what’s appropriate for everyone’s kids and circumstances. I try to make sure she plays her educational games as much as watching Kids YouTube or one of her games. We color, play, read, and talk in a good balance for us! Molly wakes me up from my soapbox daydream. “Pitha!” Molly screams looking quickly back at her tablet. “We had pizza last night. Nope.” “I’m not super hungry Robin.” Allen admits.“Yeah me either, but it’s like one. I’m not cooking till six-ish.”“How about a sandwich?” He asks.“Yeah. That’ll work. Molls, you want PB&J?”“Pleassse.” Molly begs.“You got it kiddo. Allen, I’m gonna do a small turkey and mayo. Can I get you something?”“Really? Thought I’d be fixing my own…” He chuckles.“You’re not in that much trouble. Besides, I’m feeling pretty awesome right now.”“Good. You’re looking pretty awesome too. Just don’t tell your older sister you’re hanging out with us. My wife gets jealous.”“God, Allen.” I bark in laughter. “Your dad-jokes are getting stronger.” I mumble. I turn to start setting out the sandwich stuff and Allen suddenly grabs me in a hug from behind. His hands invade my overalls trailing down over my not-quite-toned stomach. I feel the bump as his hand hits the onesie covered front of my diaper. It makes him shudder. “I bet you look super cute without the overalls on.” He purrs.“You know I do, but the cut of this onesie doesn’t fit the diaper to well. It’s hanging out on the sides. I look like a toddler wearing her mom’s panties, but I freaking love the feeling, all mushed up. Thanks for changing me earlier. Sorry I got snippy.”“Sorry I was an ass.” We laugh at each other’s apology.“I don’t know where this is going Rob, but I fucking love where it is right now. Make sure you let me know what’s not OK as you figure it out. I don’t like pissing you off, or when you’re mad at me.” “I will. I tried sucking my thumb.” I dangle.“And, did Princess Mommy like that?” “No and I don’t think I like that tone in your voice either. I’m not our daughter or some kid here.” I say politely.“Shit sorry.” Allen moves to stand up and withdraw his hand.“No stay. I’m not mad. You told me to tell you. I was just telling you.” I grind my pelvis against his hand.“Will you wet this one?”“Of course. That’s how I got here. I’m dying to know if it’ll hold.” I giggle and moan at the same time.“Let me know when it happens in case I have to go distract Molly. No sense in her seeing that.”“Yeah. That’s the idea behind these onesies too. They are diaper mufflers!” I admit. He stands up kisses the top of my head telling me I look cute before leaving the room. Allen smacks my padded rear end as he goes. I smile enjoying the attention. It’s so normal and yet abnormal with the diapers. Everything, and I mean everything, feels like a new sexy secret. Every move I make, every step I take, he’s watching me. Hahahaah, I crack myself up! “Hey let’s eat in here guys!” I yell to the living room. We pile up at the table not saying much. I log Molly out of her educational tool and put on Pandora putting it on the bar. Molly and I eat and color some more while Allen reads and eats his sandwich. We have a super terrific peaceful family time singing and eating. “Mommy, I wanna bow bubbles.”“Sounds good to me. How bout you Daddy?”“Good idea girls. Molly, I want to BLOW bubbles.” ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 11. We head outside as a family. It’s bubble time! Molly has like a million little bubble blowing toys. She has a hard time settling on one toy at a time. I’m almost certain she’s got A.D.D. watching her hover over all the options. She attacks the large Tupperware with her bubble stuff taking out a bubble hoop. It’s a bit chilly outside today, barely seventy-five degrees, and I’m just a little too cool in the shade of our covered porch. I move sitting on the edge of the porch by Molly. The sun feels amazing. Allen joins us after a bit with some drinks taking his seat at the picnic table in the shade of the porch. Guess what he does… got it in one! He pulls out his tablet and starts reading.“Your wizards and werewolves keeping you company over there?” “I’m reading a Star Wars book…” He says raising an eyebrow. “Fine. Bubbles and girls are way more fun… Are your wookies and porgs keeping you company?” “Good company thanks.” He sasses me back. “and there’s no porgs in this book! God I hope those aren’t another Ewok Species.”“I loved the Ewoks! They are cuddly and deadly!” “Blasphemy! How could a feral teddy bear kill a futuristic soldier in body armor!” He scoffs.“I can’t wait to get a stuffed porg for the bed and a six inch one to put with my Jar Jar! Oh! Molly will need one too.” I giggle losing my serious tone.“What’s funny Mommy?” “Daddy baby. Daddy is funny!” We both laugh at Allen, each for our own reasons. “We need to start screening those with her ya know. I was thinking of taking her in December.” Allen adds hopefully.“Yeah, The Last Force is coming out then right?” I tease.“The Last Jedi.”“Whatever…” God, it’s easy to rile him up.***Insert 5 min very motivated tirade on how awesome Star Wars is here***(Not sure what he said. I was smiling too hard to hear him!)“Ok babe, Ok! It’ll be fun to watch Molly see the porgs. God I hope Chewy doesn’t eat one!”“GRAH!” He pretends to rage.I do everything I can to rile him up about his fiction. I can’t help it! He just takes it so seriously. I have picked up a thing or two over the years, but mostly just what his hot button topics are. I own a Jar Jar Binks six inch toy just to annoy Allen.“Eep!” I squeal seeing him rock forward to get up. I sprint out into the yard running from my fanatic of a husband. The guy’s as big as a wookie! You’d run too if he thundered across the deck after you! Molly gets up chasing after Allen who’s chasing after me. Molls laughs so hard she can barely run. I can feel my diaper warming up around my hips. I’m thankful for the powder I used earlier. Allen is a typical ex-football guy. He has large grass eating strides, but not classically quick or maneuverable. I am. I’m quick and maneuverable as hell!We race around the front yard laughing, giggling, and with Allen thundering behind me pretending to be mad. Our neighbors undoubtedly think we are nuts, funny, but nuts for sure! That fun comes to a jarring halt when I step in a mole-run or something. The grass beneath my foot collapses under me. I twist my ankle in terrible unintended and hit the ground hard. Well, I hit hard, but not as hard as it would have, cause you know… diaper! I hear a tremendous pop and then pain radiates through me. It hurts, but the whole thing is so fucking funny that I can’t quit laughing even though tears streaming down my cheeks. I roll over and lay on the grass putting my injured leg on the knee of the good leg letting it dangle.“God Rob, are you ok baby?”“Nope, hurts.” I sniffle.“Mommy gonna go to da hospital?” “I hope not Princess. Let me have a look baby.” “Just… don’t move it, or touch it, or look at it. Damn!”Just under fifty minutes later, we pull in at the hospital’s emergency room. There’s an ace bandaged wrapped around my barefoot and the bottom of my overall pant leg. Allen parks the car under the awning and picks me up sitting me and Molly down in the waiting room. “Al, prop it up for me honey.” “K, then I’ll move the car.” “I’m so sorry, I love you.” I tell him.“Oh Robin, I love you so much. This isn’t your fault, don’t apologize. Fucking feel like Bill Murry in Caddyshack.” “But our weekend. God my foot is throbbing. I hate moles.” I give up trying to be the adult here. I sit Molly in my lap as she hugs me tightly. I sniffle into her hair amazed at the pain in my leg. Allen shuffles uncertain of what he should do. He needs to move the car… and register me… and comfort me. He’s uncomfortable with the whole situation and having a hard time deciding what to do first. “Baby… I… Shit, I’ll be right back.” He says finally committing to parking the car first.“Ummm… Daaddyy!” Molly tuts.All I could really do is look at him and let the tears trickle down my face. Shooting wicked arcs of pain radiate from my ankle down into my big toe. I can still wiggle my foot so Allen didn’t think my leg was broken, but there is something structurally wrong with my toe. It doesn’t look like it’s laying the way it should anymore. He knows I’m a pretty tough chick. I can handle pain, and my failure to handle this pain is freaking him out.Allen sprints out of the room, the doors slowing him down while he waits on them to open. I lean my head back wiping my eyes while rubbing Molly’s back. I don’t mean to scare her, but it’s impossible to push all this pain aside. “Mommy is ok?” She asks. “No not yet, but that’s why we are here baby. They’ll fix me up.” “You gonna gets crutches?” “Probably, but not right away. They will tell me to stay off my ouchies for a while.” “Girls, I’m back. Molly I have to go tell them Mommy’s here.” Allen rushes over to the ER Nurse’s intake window. He’s up there for a while filling out paperwork and describing my injuries. My phone chirps a Jawa sound after a bit of writing on his part.[Allen] Hey, I need your social and date of birth.[Me] 555-55-5555, *raised eye emoji*[Allen] nvmd on your date of birth… I figured it out.[Me] good![Allen] Almost done baby. We’ll get in pretty fast she says. [Me] *crybaby face emoji*“Allen, unwrap this. It’s too tight. Fold up my pants so I don’t have to take them off.” I make eye contact with him. Allen suddenly remembers my unconventional underwear. “Alright, if it hurts tell me.” “Should I just start screaming and not stop until you’re done?” I ask arching my eyebrow. The nurse comes out calling my name and Allen just picks me up. He holds me like a baby with my arms around his neck and face in his chest. My big toe is already turning some very unflattering colors clashing with my polish, which unreasonably pisses me off on top of the pain. He doesn’t have an arm to hold Molly’s hand with so, he shifts me around in a baby monkey hold my good leg wrapped around his waist. I keep my arms draped around his neck and straddle his stomach with one of his hands under my diapered ass. It is a super embarrassing way to be hauled around! We follow the nurse into a room and he sits me down on a paper covered exam table. We wait about fifteen more minutes with nurses and others coming in and out of the room. The doctor comes in like a paperwork tornado. He pokes and prods at my ankle, leg, foot, and toe. I hold up, but I can’t pull back the tears, that shit freaking hurts.“I’m fairly certain you have a severely fractured big toe. I think it’s dislocated too. I’m sending you for x-rays of your toe and ankle. The bruising is already starting up. That’s pretty quick. It’ll be a nasty sprain if nothing else. I’ll have a nurse clean up your foot before you go in. Your ankle is at least a high sprain and may have some hairline fractures as well, but nothing is massively out of place there. If your toe is dislocated, I’ll have to reduce it before we get you out of here. You’re looking at maybe casts for sure walking boot. The x-rays will tell.” He pats my knee calling for his nurse. The ibu I’d swallowed at home finally starts kicking in. I feel a layer or two the pain peeling back as the nurse cleans my feet. It is super weird and I don’t my like feet anyway, so I’m very uncomfortable. I focus on talking to Allen and Molly instead.“Stop squirming Rob. She’ll be done in a bit.” Allen comforts me. He turns to the nurse, “She doesn’t like feet.”A bit later they wheel me into x-ray leaving Allen and Molly in the waiting room. They painfully articulate my ankle snapping two of the toe and four of the ankle. I thoroughly wet my diaper while trying to hold my ankle in a bad angle that ramps up my pain. Back in the emergency treatment room, “Allen” I whisper. “I’m soaked. I’m super worried I’m going to leak. What the hell do we do?” ----- The Diapered Story of Robin Smith and Her Unconventional Solutions. 12. I’m genuinely terrified, but Allen doesn’t appear to have any answers for me. Worse yet, it doesn’t look like I’m getting out of here any time soon. So, we sit and wait on the doctor while I worry anxiously over my wet butt. Molls starts getting impatient fidgeting and starting to whine. Of course, that does nothing positive for my mood! Now I have a soggy ass and a kid that is about to lose her cool. Allen picks her up smiling at me. He sits her beside me in the hospital bed while breaking out his phone.I guess she was quiet longer than I thought she would be. I love you so much Doodlebug! I can’t wait for you to grow out of this awful whining stage though. Lord, it’s annoying. Shit. I’m whining too. I think as I realize I’m pouting. The edges of my mouth twerk up and I smile to myself.We’re still waiting when I feel the need to pee rise. Everything I’d drank at lunch and outside before my “foot thing” calls knocking at my bladders door. I “psst” at Allen catching his attention and motioning toward my diapered crotch with my eyes. I release a little pressure and sigh letting him know that I was wetting right then. I see the comprehension in Allen’s face. He moves Molly to the chair and checks the hospital door. Finding it fully closed, he comes to stand by my head. He leans in and picks me up gingerly. “Why don’t you just finish really fast? Then I’ll take it off of you and clean you up. You can go commando till we get out’a here.” “That’ll work. Hey, just sit me on the toilet… I can finish there.” I whisper out loud improving his plan cause there wasn’t any sense in wetting my overalls.Why the hell didn’t I think of that…? Because you don’t want to be without one! That’s why you twat… I bash myself. Answering your own mental questions is the first sign of insanity? I narrate internally. Then I mentally laugh at myself causing a physical laughing to trickle out into Allen’s shoulder.Allen sits me on the humongous hospital potty. I undo my overall bibs and hold myself up off the toilet while he tugs them down to my ankles. I look up at Allen with a mischievous look on my face and wet the diaper before he can pull it off me. As I’d feared, I over flow my protection hearing my water meet the toilet’s. Good call Princess Mommy! I think to myself.“You done yet?” Allen asks chuckling. “Yeah, hey look there! There’s wipes in here.” I point.“Got ya.” I don’t go commando very often, particularly in jean material! There are some delicate bits that should never suffer the indignity of blue jean friction. I can almost feel the furrows forming in my ass cheeks leaving funny prints in my skin. Redressed and cleaned up, Allen deposits me on the bed. I adjust my overalls moving and tugging the crotch trying to make sure no jean seams line up with my own!The doctor knocks once rapidly and sliding in the room. He puts the X-Ray’s on the wall unit lighting it up. He smiles at us grabbing his rolling doctor’s stool and scooting over to my bed side. Allen drops Molly in his lap and silences the phone preparing to listen to the doctor.“Well, I have good news and bad news!” The doctor breaks the strained silence. I sigh at his response, “Well, let’s start with the bad news!”“K, Good news. Your leg isn’t broken, but your toe sure is!” He says. “I wanted the bad news first!” I huff.“Well, the bad news is your leg isn’t broken!” He dead pans.“I don’t understand.” Allen says. “Well, my diagnosis is a high ankle sprain with a tearing of the ligaments between the tibia and fibula. Frankly, it’s more painful and is a longer recovery than a brake. In fact, most patients with this injury require physical therapy to get back in motion.” He concludes.“Well, that’s not good. Short term?” Allen asks.We talk for about thirty minutes while the doctor reduces my toe. The pain causes me to lurch forward in the bed. I feel the crotch of my overalls dampen. I immediately flush red color swamping my features. The guys simply believe it’s my reaction to the pain, but it’s not. It’s a insane feeling of embarrassment. Son of a BITCH! I yell internally.In the end, I wind up without a cast! They have this wrap-splint thing for my foot that stabilizes my toe and a high ankle walking boot for the sprain. I’m stuck 24/7 in the boot for four weeks and in the toe cast-wrap-splint-thing for the same. The doctor suspects that I’ll be in the boot for another six to eight weeks tapering off after the initial four weeks.The hospital insists that I ride a wheel chair to the emergency room outdoor pickup. I don’t fight them, but I can feel myself piddle when the orderly helps me up and then I sit into the chair. Allen picks up Molly trailing us out of the ER treatment area. I sit with the orderly while Allen grabs the car. We make a bit of small talk, or I try to. It seems like I have too or somehow he’d know that I’d wet myself. This is why I always wear a pad! Fuck! I yell inside fully of anger and shame. God, I just want to be home and cleaned up!Allen pulls up and hops out. Molly waves frantically at me. I wave back at her shyly. The orderly helps me to stand as he comes around our car. I turn around facing the orderly who smiles gently at me.“Sir?” “Yeah?” “Do you have a towel or something? If you don’t, I can get a trash bag or something for your wife.” The orderly murmurs.“I… Uh…” I stutter mortified.“We keep a towel in here for our daughter. I’ll get it.” Allen says walking to the back of the car and popping the trunk. “Oh. My. God. I’m… I can’t…” I flounder for words.“Oh Ma’am. Don’t worry about it. Stuff happens all the time. We have to sanitize these between each patient anyway. There’s no extra work and you don’t have to be embarrassed.” He tells me.“I can’t help it. This is so embarrassing.” “Can I give you a hug?” The fatherly large blonde orderly asks me.“I guess.” He leans in, “Listen, no one comes here because everything is fine.” He releases me.“We’re like IT. No one calls those guys when their computers are working fine just to say ‘Hey, my PC is working great and screaming fast!’ Nope, folks come here messed up. We try to send them home better than they arrived. That’s all we are hoping for. I’ve seen much worse. Please try not to feel to bad.”“Thanks man. She needed that, but she’s still gonna moan for days about this.” “She’s right. the. Fuck. HERE!” Anger is easier than embarrassment. So I go with anger.“Awe, here let me help you up Rob. We’ll get you home and cleaned up!” Allen says lifting me into the car. “Ya’ll take care now!” The orderly says turning his back and waving at us. It is late afternoon by the time we pull up into our driveway. Allen gets Molly to grab my purse and he carries me into the house directly to our bed. I sigh and take another round of Ibu. I’d taken the good stuff the ER doc prescribed immediately after we picked it up at Walgreens on the way home, but it hasn’t kicked in yet. I sag into our soft bed happy to be home, but injured and whiney about it lying on another towel. “On the bright side, you love skirts!” Allen teases. “I do, but I love my jeans more!” I pout. “Are you in a lot of pain right now?” “I think that stuff the doctor gave me is kicking in. I feel sleepy and tingly. Like my fingers are waking up from falling asleep.” I tell him snapping my fingers.“Sounds like it.” Allen chuckles. He diapers me with the same tender care he did the first time. I relax even further lying on the fluffy bead in my fluffy diaper elated to be dry. I put my arms out to the side making a comforter snow angle and giggle at the ceiling. God, I’m high as fuck… hehehehe I realize and find hilarious. “Yeah, I think you are hon.” Allen agrees. “Was that out loud?” I ask with wide eyes.“Yeah.” He laughs at me. “I hate this.” I whimper.“I know. You just can’t stand not being in control can you?” He laughs.“Well, I mean… yeah. Mine! All of it… hahaha.” I laugh.“You staying in here or coming out there?” He asks.“I don’t wanna be all loopy in front of Doodlebug.” “I get it. You just gonna lay there in your bra and diaper? Want some more clothes?”“Uh… yeah rotate the laundry. Remember coldy-cold water for da colors man.” I try for a suffer guy voice. “Oh man, I’m sad I’m gonna miss this. You’ll adjust though. You’ll be fine tomorrow I bet.” He assures me.“Leave me here until the whites dry up. I wanna wear a onesie, but I’ll stay here under the covers until then. Maybe take a nap.” I try to roll on my side. “Let’s get you covered up Princess Mommy.” Allen reassures me patting my butt.“Don’t forget to change me. I’m totally not getting up for peeing in this thing. Hey bring me my phone and put the charger in here… pppppwease.” I let him tuck me in like a kid and quickly drift off to sleep.
- 52 replies
-
- desperation
- diaper
-
(and 7 more)
Tagged with:
-
Beatrice was happy for her mom. Truly. But then a week ago after her mom got married, he moved in with them. She was okay with it at first but he was now treating her like she was a little kid. And she knew, he knew, she's 19. Beatrice didn't like he was waking her up early, talking to her like she was little, helping her with things she didn't need help with. It was starting to annoy her a little but her step dad was completely oblivious. It was another Saturday morning, she was trying to sleep but then she heard James stepping in quietly. She wondered what time it was, probably around 7 or something. Though she kept trying to sleep.
- 134 replies
-
25 year old Joey Sanders waited in the living room for his new girlfriend of a year, Natalie. Joey had met Natalie through his best friend whom had dated Natalie's sister. Joey had been skeptical about matchmaking, but it was love at first sight. Earlier in the month, he had asked her to move in. She eagerly accepted. He eventually planned on marrying her. Joey and Natalie had one big thing in common: children. Joey was the proud father of 2 year old Jaxon Sanders. His mother was no longer in the picture. She signed over her parental rights hours after his birth. Natalie had a 4 year old daughter, Isla. This day was the first step to the rest of their lives.
![[DD] Boards & Chat](https://www.dailydiapers.com/board/uploads/monthly_2021_11/DDweb-02.png.0c06f38ea7c6e581d61ce22dffdea106.png)